roman_a church_n not_o to_o be_v ground_v on_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n neither_o on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n introduction_n the_o read_n of_o the_o book_n concern_v the_o perpetuity_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o occasion_n to_o i_o to_o examine_v in_o particular_a the_o belief_n of_o rome_n about_o that_o matter_n thus_o the_o affair_n of_o my_o conversion_n depend_v when_o providence_n that_o watch_v after_o the_o mean_n to_o work_v out_o my_o safety_n bring_v forth_o a_o occasion_n that_o do_v contribute_v very_o much_o to_o reduce_v all_o my_o difficulty_n to_o the_o question_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o end_n that_o this_o authority_n be_v prove_v false_a the_o doctrine_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v ground_v upon_o it_o may_v be_v present_o destroy_v it_o be_v in_o the_o time_n when_o the_o dispute_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o faith_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n make_v a_o great_a rumour_n in_o the_o world_n among_o learned_a men._n i_o read_v with_o as_o much_o application_n as_o i_o be_v capable_a of_o the_o book_n and_o the_o reply_v both_o of_o mr._n claude_n and_o of_o mr._n arnaud_n the_o triumph_n of_o the_o eucharist_n by_o mr._n pavillon_n the_o book_n of_o father_n noüet_o and_o the_o book_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o sense_n in_o the_o eucharist_n i_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o make_v myself_o a_o arbitrator_n to_o judge_v those_o rare_a man_n who_o be_v account_v without_o contradiction_n the_o most_o witty_a and_o learned_a of_o france_n since_o i_o do_v but_o tell_v the_o history_n of_o my_o conversion_n i_o do_v only_o rehearse_v the_o effect_n the_o read_n of_o those_o book_n wrought_v in_o my_o soul_n and_o i_o be_o not_o so_o unjust_a as_o to_o hinder_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n to_o think_v what_o they_o please_v of_o those_o learned_a man_n writing_n and_o to_o judge_v they_o at_o liberty_n the_o read_n of_o those_o book_n bring_v i_o abundance_n of_o light_n in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n i_o do_v consider_v the_o argument_n of_o perpetuity_n as_o a_o argument_n which_o be_v not_o metaphysical_a be_v to_o be_v reduce_v at_o last_o to_o a_o multitude_n of_o probability_n from_o which_o one_o can_v never_o conclude_v any_o thing_n with_o necessity_n though_o he_o will_v suppose_v as_o true_a with_o mr._n arnauld_n the_o principle_n whereupon_o it_o be_v ground_v to_o wit_n the_o belief_n of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o point_n of_o transubstantiation_n of_o which_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v transubstantiation_n reality_n all_o the_o christian_a church_n say_v mr._n arnauld_n believe_v the_o real_a presence_n therefore_o it_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n it_o be_v impossible_a there_o shall_v have_v be_v make_v any_o alteration_n in_o doctrine_n this_o argument_n find_v i_o know_v not_o what_o repugnancy_n to_o be_v receive_v in_o my_o mind_n for_o though_o i_o suppose_v the_o first_o proposition_n to_o be_v true_a which_o since_o by_o the_o study_n of_o the_o history_n and_o relation_n of_o several_a country_n i_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v false_a yet_o i_o can_v not_o consent_v to_o the_o consequence_n because_o the_o proof_n of_o it_o be_v not_o true_a to_o my_o think_n and_o what_o endeavour_n soever_o of_o rhetoric_n mr._n arnauld_n use_v to_o expound_v and_o sustain_v his_o thought_n yet_o i_o do_v ever_o conceive_v that_o it_o be_v very_o likely_a some_o alteration_n have_v be_v make_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o eucharist_n as_o well_o as_o in_o other_o article_n in_o which_o every_o body_n acknowledge_v there_o have_v be_v on_o the_o contrary_a i_o find_v mr._n claude_n answer_n very_o reasonable_a this_o alteration_n have_v be_v make_v say_v he_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o impossible_a and_o his_o proof_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v believe_v the_o real_a presence_n with_o transubstantiation_n but_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v so_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n therefore_o there_o have_v be_v make_v a_o alteration_n and_o afterward_o he_o prove_v in_o his_o book_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o author_n who_o live_v in_o that_o time_n that_o true_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n this_o argument_n seem_v to_o i_o very_o natural_a sincere_a and_o true_a the_o proof_n of_o it_o easy_a and_o well_o ground_v but_o for_o that_o of_o mr._n arnauld_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o rough_a uneasy_a intricate_a the_o proof_n of_o it_o ground_v upon_o supposition_n in_o the_o air_n which_o can_v not_o be_v reduce_v at_o last_o but_o to_o some_o appearance_n of_o truth_n prove_v nothing_o necessary_o these_o reason_n incite_v i_o to_o judge_v in_o favour_n of_o mr._n claude_n against_o mr._n arnauld_n argument_n but_o though_o i_o be_v persuade_v his_o argument_n be_v not_o good_a yet_o i_o will_v not_o confess_v the_o opinion_n he_o be_v for_o be_v not_o true_a may_v be_v say_v i_o mr._n arnauld_n have_v proceed_v a_o little_a too_o far_o in_o a_o false_a proof_n and_o afterward_o he_o have_v be_v engage_v for_o his_o honour_n sake_n to_o hold_v it_o earnest_o but_o in_o fine_a mr._n arnauld_n be_v but_o a_o private_a man_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v disclaim_v his_o argument_n and_o not_o hold_v with_o he_o so_o mr._n arnauld_n reason_n be_v false_a it_o do_v not_o follow_v from_o thence_o that_o the_o belief_n of_o his_o church_n be_v false_a since_o it_o can_v have_v other_o proof_n and_o other_o reason_n that_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o i_o resolve_v to_o examine_v the_o question_n of_o the_o eucharist_n for_o my_o own_o clear_n and_o here_o be_v very_a near_o the_o method_n i_o observe_v in_o it_o division_n of_o the_o error_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n concern_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o eucharist_n i_o suppose_v first_o as_o a_o principle_n which_o i_o receive_v without_o examination_n that_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v to_o be_v our_o rule_n since_o that_o church_n near_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n have_v the_o advantage_n to_o suck_v truth_n out_o of_o their_o source_n that_o be_v suppose_v i_o divide_v all_o that_o be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o two_o part_n first_o the_o belief_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n second_o the_o form_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o it_o since_o then_o say_v i_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o council_n of_o 2._o of_o consil_n trid._n sessi_fw-la 33._o item_n sess_v 13._o cap._n 4._o can_n 2._o trent_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n since_o the_o form_n of_o administrate_v the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v so_o much_o different_a from_o that_o which_o be_v relate_v by_o st._n paul_n in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n chap._n 11._o and_o by_o the_o evangelist_n we_o be_v to_o examine_v whether_o the_o belief_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o whether_o the_o mass_n which_o be_v the_o roman_a form_n of_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n have_v not_o be_v institute_v by_o the_o first_o christian_n and_o whereas_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n believe_v the_o 13._o the_o consil_n trid._n sess_v 33._o &_o sess_v 13._o real_a presence_n with_o 2._o with_o sess_v 13._o cap._n 4._o can_n 2._o transubstantiation_n believe_v that_o the_o mass_n be_v a_o propitiatory_a 3._o propitiatory_a sess_n 22._o cap._n 1_o &_o 2._o can_n 1_o 2_o 3._o sacrifice_n both_o for_o the_o quick_a and_o for_o the_o dead_a believe_v that_o the_o mass_n as_o it_o be_v now_o ordain_v by_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o ancient_a form_n of_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n i_o examine_v every_o one_o of_o those_o question_n 1._o ch._n 2._o §._o 1._o and_o i_o find_v 1._o that_o the_o belief_n of_o rome_n about_o real_a presence_n with_o transubstantiation_n be_v a_o new_a doctrine_n in_o the_o church_n 2._o that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n 3._o that_o the_o manner_n of_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n be_v very_o much_o different_a and_o quite_o oppose_v to_o that_o which_o christian_n be_v use_v to_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n from_o whence_o i_o conclude_v that_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o ground_v upon_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n sect_n i._o the_o belief_n of_o rome_n about_o the_o real_a presence_n with_o transubstantiation_n be_v a_o new_a doctrine_n in_o the_o church_n i._n first_o proof_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o reason_n wherewith_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n be_v use_v to_o dispute_v against_o the_o heathen_n several_a
be_v find_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o dare_v prove_v against_o they_o as_o do_v tertullian_n against_o martion_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o that_o consequent_o christ_n be_v not_o a_o ghost_n on_o the_o contrary_a a_o protestant_n will_v be_v able_a to_o bring_v against_o those_o heresy_n the_o same_o argument_n which_o the_o first_o christian_n use_v and_o he_o will_v be_v warrant_v therein_o by_o all_o his_o church_n from_o whence_o come_v that_o difference_n if_o not_o from_o that_o that_o a_o protestant_n believe_v nothing_o concern_v the_o sacrament_n but_o what_o they_o believe_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n whereas_o a_o divine_a of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n acknowledge_v several_a articlesof_o faith_n which_o be_v unknown_a among_o the_o first_o christian_n and_o which_o consequent_o be_v the_o cause_n he_o can_v speak_v the_o same_o language_n nor_o use_v the_o same_o argument_n they_o use_v these_o two_o reason_n seem_v to_o i_o so_o much_o the_o strong_a because_o i_o look_v upon_o they_o not_o as_o the_o opinion_n of_o a_o single_a man_n who_o may_v be_v deceive_v or_o some_o place_n of_o a_o book_n which_o may_v be_v corrupt_v and_o draw_v into_o a_o ill_a sense_n but_o i_o look_v upon_o these_o reason_n as_o the_o reason_n of_o all_o the_o church_n and_o public_a weapon_n both_o of_o learned_a man_n and_o of_o the_o people_n to_o fight_v the_o heathen_n and_o the_o heretic_n with_o all_o iii_o three_o proof_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o manner_n whereafter_o the_o father_n be_v wont_a to_o speak_v of_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n that_o which_o confirm_v i_o that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n with_o transubstantiation_n be_v the_o manner_n wherewith_o the_o father_n both_o greek_a and_o latin_a be_v wont_a to_o speak_v of_o those_o mystery_n theodoret_n genesim_fw-la theodoret_n in_o 55_o quaestiosuper_fw-la genesim_fw-la say_v it_o be_v a_o extreme_a foclishness_n and_o extravagancy_n to_o worship_n what_o one_o eat_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o the_o same_o in_o ãâã_d in_o dialog_n 1._o entitle_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d another_o place_n the_o lord_z say_v he_o do_v the_o honour_n to_o the_o visible_a sign_n to_o call_v they_o his_o blood_n and_o his_o body_n not_o have_v change_v their_o nature_n but_o have_v add_v grace_n to_o nature_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v there_o any_o appearance_n that_o the_o father_n believe_v what_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n teach_v a_o divine_a of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o shall_v say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o extreme_a extravagancy_n to_o worship_n what_o one_o eat_v that_o christ_n have_v not_o change_v the_o nature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n will_v he_o not_o present_o be_v send_v to_o the_o inquisition_n and_o condemn_v as_o a_o heretic_n to_o be_v burn_v a_o live_a the_o eucharist_n say_v the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n 6._o church_n cyprian_a de_fw-fr caena_n cap._n 6._o be_v a_o visible_a sacrament_n whereupon_o the_o divine_a essence_n impart_v itself_o after_o a_o unutterable_a manner_n it_o 2._o it_o idem_fw-la cap._n 2._o be_v a_o holy_a nutriment_n capable_a of_o render_v we_o immortal_a which_o be_v very_o much_o different_a from_o the_o ordinary_a nutriment_n we_o be_v daily_o feed_v withal_o it_o keep_v indeed_o the_o kind_n of_o a_o corporeal_a substance_n but_o it_o make_v know_v by_o a_o invisible_a efficacy_n that_o it_o possess_v the_o presence_n of_o a_o divine_a virtue_n 8._o virtue_n hilary_n de_fw-fr trinit_fw-la lib._n 8._o we_o be_v in_o christ_n by_o his_o corporeal_a birth_n and_o he_o be_v in_o we_o by_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o sacrament_n adimant_n sacrament_n august_n cap._n 12._o cont_n adimant_n the_o lord_n do_v not_o doubt_v to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n when_o he_o give_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n he_o 3._o he_o idem_fw-la in_o psal_n 3._o permit_v judas_n to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o banquet_n wherein_o he_o commit_v and_o give_v to_o his_o disciple_n the_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n if_o a_o roman_a author_n shall_v use_v these_o expression_n which_o the_o holy_a father_n use_v will_v not_o a_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n zealous_a for_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n say_v to_o he_o sir_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o say_v with_o cyprian_a than_o tthe_v divine_a essence_n impart_v itself_o in_o the_o eucharist_n after_o a_o unutterable_a manner_n the_o heretic_n say_v all_o that_o you_o must_v say_v furthermore_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n of_o christ_n be_v there_o real_o in_o the_o room_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o say_v the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o holy_a nutriment_n of_o a_o divine_a virtue_n the_o heretic_n do_v confess_v all_o that_o you_o must_v say_v moreover_o it_o contain_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o by_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o sacrament_n the_o heretic_n do_v believe_v the_o same_o thing_n but_o you_o must_v say_v he_o be_v in_o we_o real_o he_o body_n his_o soul_n his_o divinity_n in_o fine_a you_o must_v have_v a_o very_a great_a care_n of_o say_v the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o sign_n and_o the_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n as_o st._n austin_n say_v you_o must_v say_v to_o the_o contrary_a that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n you_o must_v say_v that_o it_o be_v christ_n own_o body_n and_o blood_n into_o which_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v transubstantiate_v certain_o this_o bishop_n will_v speak_v well_o according_a to_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o new_a roman_a church_n but_o he_o will_v be_v far_o from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n he_o will_v forsake_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n he_o will_v bring_v forth_o proposition_n of_o which_o the_o first_o christian_n have_v be_v whole_o ignorant_a he_o will_v even_o condemn_v the_o belief_n of_o 330_o bishop_n of_o a_o general_a council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n in_o the_o year_n 754._o for_o those_o 330_o bishop_n condemn_v as_o idolatry_n the_o worship_v of_o image_n among_o the_o reason_n they_o bring_v do_v exhort_v the_o people_n to_o be_v content_v with_o the_o image_n that_o christ_n have_v institute_v give_v in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n bread_n and_o wine_n as_o image_n and_o figure_n of_o his_o own_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o speak_v of_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o eucharist_n behold_v there_o be_v say_v those_o father_n the_o image_n of_o his_o lifegiving_a body_n and_o a_o little_a after_o the_o lord_n say_v they_o have_v command_v we_o to_o put_v upon_o the_o table_n this_o image_n especial_o choose_v to_o wit_n the_o substance_n of_o bread_n lest_o idolatry_n shall_v slip_v in_o among_o the_o christian_n if_o he_o have_v be_v represent_v under_o a_o human_a figure_n iu._n four_o proof_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o novelty_n of_o the_o doctrine_n teach_v transubstantiation_n all_o those_o reason_n persuade_v i_o not_o only_o that_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n with_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o furthermore_o that_o they_o be_v article_n of_o faith_n new_o devise_v and_o i_o know_v afterward_o they_o be_v no_o old_a than_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o thirteen_o age_n when_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o in_o the_o 3._o the_o scotus_n in_o 4._o sent._n do_v 11._o quaest_n 3._o council_n of_o lateran_n in_o the_o yearâ214_n â214_z set_v among_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n the_o belief_n of_o transubstantiation_n since_o we_o see_v that_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o nine_o age_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 870._o bertram_z or_o john_n scot_n one_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a man_n of_o that_o time_n write_v a_o book_n by_o the_o command_n of_o charles_n the_o bald_a king_n of_o france_n touch_v the_o question_n of_o the_o eucharist_n wherein_o he_o maintain_v open_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n since_o we_o offi._n we_o biblioteca_n patr._n de_fw-la diu._n offi._n find_v a_o letter_n of_o the_o emperor_n charles_n magne_n to_o his_o teacher_n alcuinus_fw-la wherein_o these_o word_n be_v to_o be_v read_v jesus_n christ_n sup_v with_o his_o disciple_n break_v the_o bread_n and_o give_v it_o to_o they_o likewise_o the_o cup_n in_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o fine_a since_o even_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n instead_o of_o these_o word_n which_o be_v to_o be_v find_v there_o now_o ut_fw-la nobis_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la fiat_fw-la dilectissimi_fw-la filii_fw-la tui_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o it_o may_v become_v to_o we_o
cause_v i_o to_o defer_v it_o again_o after_o it_o have_v make_v i_o understand_v that_o this_o same_o romish_a faith_n be_v ground_v neither_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n nor_o upon_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a christian_n according_a to_o the_o pretension_n of_o the_o roman_a theologian_n this_o pretence_n be_v the_o authority_n of_o rome_n which_o i_o suppose_v infallible_a and_o it_o be_v that_o pretend_v infallible_a authority_n which_o keep_v i_o still_o in_o its_o communion_n if_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v infallible_a what_o matter_n be_v it_o whether_o the_o article_n determine_v by_o it_o have_v any_o foundation_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n or_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o long_o as_o we_o suppose_v it_o infallible_a we_o must_v believe_v all_o the_o article_n it_o teach_v and_o it_o signify_v nothing_o to_o say_v that_o such_o or_o such_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o heretofore_o believe_v when_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v declare_v it_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n be_v conceive_v without_o any_o original_a sin_n and_o that_o we_o must_v hold_v as_o oecumenick_n the_o council_n of_o basil_n that_o 36._o that_o sess_n 36._o teach_v we_o this_o doctrine_n when_o this_o church_n shall_v declare_v that_o all_o christian_n be_v true_o and_o real_o bury_v in_o jesus_n christ_n in_o baptism_n that_o the_o water_n use_v in_o that_o sacrament_n be_v transubstantiate_v into_o christ_n own_o true_a blood_n wherein_o our_o sin_n be_v purify_v and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o heresy_n to_o believe_v that_o under_o the_o appearance_n of_o the_o water_n of_o the_o baptism_n there_o remain_v something_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o water_n that_o baptism_n must_v be_v worship_v when_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v please_v to_o determine_v all_o these_o article_n and_o to_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v implicit_o in_o 3.27_o in_o rom._n 6.3_o 4._o col._n 2.12_o gal._n 3.27_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o emerit_fw-la the_o st._n august_n epist_n 164._o ad_fw-la emerit_fw-la father_n we_o shall_v be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v they_o because_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a this_o way_n of_o deal_v to_o acknowledge_v plain_o that_o neither_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o the_o first_o christian_n believe_v many_o article_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v now_o believe_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n seem_v to_o i_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o sincere_a than_o to_o seek_v in_o the_o father_n what_o they_o never_o say_v and_o to_o make_v the_o primitive_a church_n believe_v thing_n which_o it_o do_v never_o so_o much_o as_o think_v of_o this_o way_n of_o deal_v free_o be_v a_o little_a bold_a but_o it_o be_v just_a sincere_a and_o very_o easy_a according_a to_o that_o method_n when_o one_o ask_v a_o theologian_n why_o do_v you_o believe_v transubstantiation_n he_o present_o answer_v that_o he_o believe_v transubstantiation_n as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n because_o the_o council_n of_o 4._o of_o sess_n 13._o cap._n 4._o trent_n have_v declare_v that_o it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o pronounce_v anathema_n against_o those_o who_o shall_v hold_v the_o contrary_n is_n be_v not_o better_a to_o answer_v thus_o than_o to_o break_v one_o brain_n to_o give_v unto_o the_o father_n both_o greek_a and_o latin_a several_a explication_n which_o they_o will_v not_o avow_v if_o they_o be_v alive_a and_o to_o make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o in_o those_o passage_n of_o the_o father_n wherein_o they_o use_v these_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d they_o have_v intend_v to_o say_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o be_v a_o expression_n not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o any_o of_o those_o father_n as_o it_o be_v observe_v by_o a_o late_a 247._o late_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d orig._n eccles_n tom_fw-mi 1._o part_n post_fw-la p._n 247._o bishop_n of_o norwich_n cite_v by_o dr._n hammond_n in_o his_o catechism_n i_o see_v very_o well_o say_v i_o that_o after_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o father_n wherein_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o find_v evident_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o short_a way_n be_v to_o refer_v all_o the_o business_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v infallible_a to_o deal_v fair_o simple_o just_o and_o honest_o we_o must_v say_v i_o believe_v the_o christian_a people_n for_o who_o christ_n shed_v all_o his_o blood_n ought_v not_o to_o partake_v of_o the_o chalice_n of_o his_o blood_n because_o the_o council_n of_o 13._o of_o sess_n 13._o constance_n and_o the_o council_n of_o 21._o of_o sess_n 21._o trent_n have_v so_o determine_v i_o believe_v that_o beside_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cross_n there_o be_v another_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n viz._n the_o mass_n which_o blot_v out_o the_o sin_n both_o of_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a because_o the_o council_n of_o 3._o of_o sess_n 22._o chap._n 1_o 2._o can_n 1_o 2_o 3._o trent_n make_v that_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o say_v the_o same_o honest_o and_o in_o good_a earnest_n of_o purgatory_n of_o indulgence_n of_o invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o of_o other_o article_n and_o not_o heady_o drive_v on_o to_o find_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n article_n of_o faith_n whereof_o it_o have_v never_o so_o much_o as_o the_o least_o knowledge_n or_o notion_n thus_o there_o remain_v nothing_o but_o to_o examine_v if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v infallible_a this_o be_v the_o indivisible_a point_n whereupon_o i_o fix_v all_o my_o religion_n thither_o i_o reduce_v all_o the_o controversial_a question_n wherefore_o i_o examine_v that_o question_n of_o the_o infalliblity_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o whether_o because_o i_o be_v afraid_a to_o find_v the_o infallibility_n of_o rome_n as_o ill_o ground_v as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n whether_o because_o the_o greediness_n i_o have_v to_o maintain_v with_o credit_n and_o reputation_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o i_o be_v engage_v at_o that_o time_n to_o sustain_v in_o public_a dispute_n have_v distract_v and_o blind_v i_o whether_o because_o grace_n be_v not_o please_v at_o that_o time_n to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o my_o conversion_n but_o will_v have_v i_o grow_v ripe_a and_o root_v very_o profound_o in_o my_o mind_n the_o reason_n i_o have_v meditate_a to_o fasten_v i_o more_o and_o more_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o holy_a word_n i_o devise_v many_o proof_n and_o many_o reason_n both_o good_a and_o bad_a i_o persuade_v myself_o first_o that_o i_o may_v persuade_v other_o more_o easy_o and_o i_o maintain_v in_o my_o public_a thesis_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n even_o that_o the_o pope_n alone_o be_v infallible_a when_o he_o determin_n something_o that_o belong_v to_o the_o faith_n that_o persuasion_n keep_v i_o still_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n wherefore_o i_o begin_v to_o be_v assuage_v and_o to_o change_v my_o discourse_n and_o whereas_o i_o have_v consider_v the_o article_n of_o faith_n of_o that_o church_n as_o so_o many_o error_n because_o they_o be_v not_o agreeable_a with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n i_o consider_v they_o at_o that_o time_n only_o as_o some_o novelty_n which_o be_v not_o criminal_a since_o i_o suppose_v that_o church_n be_v infallible_a have_v right_a to_o produce_v every_o day_n and_o to_o declare_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n in_o that_o supposal_n when_o some_o learned_a man_n ask_v i_o my_o sentiment_n in_o particular_a upon_o some_o question_n of_o divinity_n i_o soon_o return_v according_a to_o my_o opinion_n and_o i_o reduce_v all_o the_o question_n to_o the_o infallibility_n of_o rome_n but_o when_o i_o be_v oblige_v to_o speak_v in_o public_a and_o before_o the_o people_n i_o think_v myself_o engage_v for_o fear_v of_o scandalize_a and_o discontent_a weak_a mind_n to_o use_v the_o method_n which_o other_o use_v every_o where_o and_o to_o bring_v though_o against_o my_o own_o persuasion_n some_o passage_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o some_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n to_o prove_v in_o particular_a every_o article_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n such_o be_v my_o deal_n at_o that_o time_n when_o the_o only_a persuasion_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o rome_n fasten_v i_o in_o its_o communion_n the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o part_n the_o second_o part_n second_o party_n que_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a n'est_fw-mi poinâ_n la_fw-fr veritable_a eglise_fw-fr que_fw-fr soâ_n authorité_fw-fr n'est_fw-fr point_fw-fr infaillible_a qu'elle_fw-fr n'est_fw-fr remplie_o quâ_n de_fw-fr corruption_n &_o d'erreur_n introduction_n la_fw-fr providence_n fit_a naistre_fw-mi des_fw-fr
and_o must_v confess_v that_o they_o do_v wrong_v when_o they_o excommunicate_v it_o and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v infallible_a and_o have_v the_o true_a faith_n since_o in_o it_o they_o do_v conserve_v from_o bishop_n to_o bishop_n from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n a_o right_a succession_n in_o all_o the_o ecclesiastical_a power_n but_o it_o be_v not_o upon_o succession_n only_o that_o church_n be_v to_o ground_v the_o doctrine_n they_o profess_v the_o reform_a church_n be_v very_o willing_a to_o be_v examine_v after_o the_o very_a rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o do_v not_o defend_v a_o false_a principle_n by_o antiquity_n as_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v conclusion_n that_o it_o be_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o true_a doctrine_n from_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v a_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o have_v the_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n have_v no_o reason_n to_o boast_v neither_o of_o its_o antiquity_n nor_o of_o its_o multitude_n nor_o succession_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o father_n use_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o succession_n against_o the_o heretic_n tertullian_n 32._o tertullian_n de_fw-fr praescrip_n cap._n 32._o urge_v it_o against_o those_o of_o his_o time_n optatus_n 3._o optatus_n lib._n 2_o &_o 3._o against_o the_o donatist_n augustin_n against_o the_o manichee_n the_o arian_n and_o the_o pelagian_o but_o lest_o you_o shall_v be_v mistake_v do_v but_o read_v exact_o those_o father_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o with_o the_o succession_n of_o church_n and_o bishop_n they_o require_v a_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n which_o tertullian_n call_v a_o consanguinity_n and_o a_o affinity_n of_o doctrine_n to_o prove_v they_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o st._n augustin_n say_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o prove_v thorough_o but_o by_o the_o scripture_n let_v they_o produce_v say_v tertullian_n 32._o tertullian_n de_fw-fr praescr_n cap._n 32._o the_o beginning_n of_o their_o church_n let_v they_o show_v we_o the_o order_n and_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o bishop_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o at_o last_o bring_v forth_o some_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o some_o instruct_v by_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v author_n of_o their_o church_n etc._n etc._n but_o though_o they_o shall_v have_v dispatch_v that_o step_n though_o they_o shall_v have_v devise_v some_o catalogue_n of_o succession_n yet_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v get_v very_o much_o by_o that_o for_o their_o doctrine_n compare_v with_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n will_v make_v it_o appear_v by_o they_o diversity_n and_o the_o contrariety_n there_o be_v betwixt_o they_o that_o neither_o the_o apostle_n nor_o those_o who_o have_v be_v instruct_v by_o they_o be_v the_o author_n of_o their_o church_n even_o say_v he_o they_o shall_v be_v condemn_v by_o those_o church_n which_o though_o they_o have_v not_o for_o their_o author_n neither_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n nor_o one_o instruct_v by_o they_o immediate_o as_o be_v erect_v after_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n begin_v in_o our_o day_n be_v nevertheless_o apostolical_a because_o of_o the_o consanguinity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n they_o teach_v which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o which_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o st._n gregory_n of_o nazianze_n athan._n nazianze_n in_o laud._n athan._n show_v that_o the_o succession_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v by_o piety_n soon_o than_o by_o seat_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o he_o who_o profess_v the_o true_a faith_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o seat_n he_o who_o do_v the_o contrary_a though_o he_o do_v sit_v in_o the_o same_o seat_n be_v a_o enemy_n direct_o oppose_v to_o that_o chair_n which_o he_o sit_v on_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o faith_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d aught_o to_o be_v esteem_v the_o true_a succession_n for_o it_o have_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o whereas_o the_o other_o have_v but_o the_o appearance_n thereof_o thus_o you_o see_v that_o even_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o have_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o same_o chair_n and_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n boast_v of_o upon_o all_o occasion_n since_o one_o may_v show_v a_o long_a catalogue_n of_o succession_n and_o be_v a_o heretic_n for_o all_o that_o as_o you_o see_v by_o tertullian_n his_o testimony_n since_o one_o may_v sit_v upon_o the_o same_o chair_n which_o be_v catholic_n heretofore_o and_o for_o all_o that_o be_v the_o swear_a enemy_n of_o that_o chair_n as_o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o testimony_n of_o st._n gregory_n of_o nazianze_n but_o a_o church_n ought_v to_o have_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o faith_n the_o succession_n of_o the_o piety_n and_o show_v as_o tertullian_n speak_v a_o consanguinity_n of_o doctrine_n consanguinitatem_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la and_o this_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v not_o boast_v of_o at_o all_o since_o it_o can_v abide_v that_o we_o shall_v speak_v of_o examine_v its_o doctrine_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o of_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n with_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o apostle_n let_v not_o therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n boast_n that_o it_o have_v possess_v almost_o all_o the_o fine_a church_n in_o the_o world_n the_o arian_n have_v possess_v they_o as_o well_o as_o they_o and_o st._n hierome_n for_o all_o that_o call_v they_o heretic_n the_o church_n say_v that_o father_n 133._o father_n in_o psal_n 133._o consist_v not_o in_o wall_n and_o building_n but_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n the_o church_n be_v where_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v it_o be_v not_o above_o 15_o or_o 20_o year_n pass_v since_o the_o heretic_n possess_v all_o these_o building_n even_o all_o these_o glorious_a church_n but_o in_o that_o time_n the_o church_n be_v there_o where_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v ecclesia_fw-la autem_fw-la ibi_fw-la vera_fw-la erat_fw-la ubi_fw-la fides_fw-la erat_fw-la can_v not_o we_o have_v say_v the_o same_o in_o this_o kingdom_n it_o be_v not_o above_o 120_o or_o 160_o year_n past_a before_o the_o time_n of_o henry_n the_o 8_o and_z queen_n elizabeth_n when_o the_o papist_n possess_v all_o these_o building_n even_o all_o these_o church_n but_o in_o that_o time_n the_o true_a church_n be_v there_o where_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v ecclesia_fw-la autem_fw-la ibi_fw-la vera_fw-la erat_fw-la ubi_fw-la fides_fw-la erat_fw-la do_v not_o let_v they_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v succeed_v st._n peter_n for_o we_o will_v answer_v that_o nero_n be_v successor_n of_o augustus_n and_o notwithstanding_o nero_n be_v a_o tyrant_n augustus_n be_v a_o good_a prince_n we_o will_v answer_v that_o the_o king_n manasses_n succeed_v ezechias_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o manasses_n be_v a_o wicked_a king_n ezechias_n be_v a_o saint_n in_o fine_a we_o will_v say_v that_o the_o arian_n bishop_n have_v succeed_v the_o catholic_n that_o the_o impious_a nestorius_n be_v the_o right_a successor_n of_o st._n andrew_n in_o the_o chair_n of_o constantinople_n that_o the_o famous_a heretic_n paul_n of_o samosate_n be_v the_o right_a successor_n of_o st._n peter_n in_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n and_o that_o all_o those_o as_o well_o as_o the_o pope_n have_v succeed_v other_o who_o have_v rule_v before_o they_o but_o as_o the_o night_n succeed_v the_o day_n sickness_n good_a health_n death_n life_n chapter_n ii_o the_o true_a ground_n of_o the_o now_o roman_a church_n 2._o chap._n 2._o as_o soon_o as_o i_o have_v overthrow_v those_o three_o false_a imagination_n of_o antiquity_n multitude_n and_o succession_n wherewith_o they_o use_v to_o cloak_v the_o error_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v very_o easy_a to_o know_v the_o true_a ground_n and_o foundation_n whereupon_o it_o be_v build_v and_o those_o ground_n be_v neither_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n nor_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n nor_o antiquity_n nor_o the_o concurrence_n of_o the_o multitude_n nor_o the_o succession_n of_o church_n or_o bishop_n i_o know_v aftere_a a_o diligent_a examination_n that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v other_o than_o the_o ambition_n and_o covetousness_n of_o those_o who_o govern_v it_o and_o it_o be_v from_o thence_o that_o all_o the_o corruption_n and_o all_o the_o error_n of_o that_o church_n have_v proceed_v section_n i._o the_o ambition_n of_o the_o pope_n §._o 1._o the_o pope_n exalt_v himself_o above_o all_o king_n whereas_o by_o right_n he_o ought_v to_o be_v submit_v to_o they_o pope_n gregory_n the_o 7_o in_o a_o synod_n hold_v at_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n 1076._o establish_v 27_o proposition_n upon_o which_o be_v ground_v all_o the_o greatness_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v call_v the_o dictatorship_n of_o the_o
memoires_n de_fw-fr mr._n des-ecotais_a cy_n devant_fw-fr appelle_fw-fr dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a le_fw-fr tres_fw-fr venerable_n pere_fw-fr cassian_n de_fw-fr paris_n prestre_fw-fr et_fw-fr predicateur_n de_fw-fr l'ordre_fw-fr des_fw-fr capucins_n ov_fw-mi les_fw-fr motifs_fw-fr de_fw-fr sa_fw-fr conversion_n divisés_fw-fr en_fw-fr deux_fw-fr party_n i._n que_fw-fr la_fw-fr doctrine_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a d'apresent_v n'est_fw-fr fondée_fw-fr ny_fw-fr sur_fw-fr l'ecriture_n sainte_n ny_fw-fr sur_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr ny_fw-fr sur_fw-fr l'authorité_fw-fr des_fw-fr saint_n peres_n cequi_fw-la est_fw-la plus_fw-la particulierement_n et_fw-fr plus_fw-fr evidement_fw-fr verifié_fw-fr dans_fw-fr l'examen_fw-la de_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr rome_n touchant_a l'euchristie_a ii_o que_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a n'est_fw-mi point_n la_fw-fr veritable_a eglise_fw-fr qu'elle_fw-fr n'a_fw-fr point_n de_fw-fr son_fw-fr costé_fw-fr exclusivement_n et_fw-fr au_fw-fr prejudice_n des_fw-fr autres_fw-fr eglise_n christiennes_n ny_fw-fr l'_fw-fr antiquite_v de_fw-fr la_fw-fr foy_fw-fr ny_fw-fr la_fw-fr multitude_n du_fw-fr peuple_n ny_fw-fr la_fw-fr veritable_a et_fw-fr legitime_fw-la succession_n des_fw-fr euéques_fw-fr que_fw-fr son_fw-fr authorite_n n'est_fw-fr point_fw-fr infaillible_a et_fw-fr qu'elle_fw-fr est_fw-fr toute_fw-fr pleine_fw-fr d'erreur_n et_fw-fr de_fw-fr corruption_n a_o londres_n imprimé_fw-fr chez_fw-fr g._n godbid_v et_fw-la se_fw-la vend_fw-mi chez_fw-fr moyse_n pit_n a_o l'ange_n vis_fw-fr à _fw-fr vis_fw-fr la_fw-fr petite_fw-fr porte_fw-fr de_fw-fr st._n paul_n 1677._o memoires_n of_o mr._n des-ecotais_a former_o style_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o most_o venerable_a father_z cassianus_n of_o paris_n priest_n and_o preacher_n of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o capucin_n or_o the_o motive_n of_o his_o conversion_n divide_v into_o two_o part_n i._o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o now_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o ground_v neither_o upon_o the_o holy_a scripture_n neither_o upon_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n which_o be_v more_o particular_o and_o more_o evident_o verify_v in_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o belief_n of_o rome_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n ii_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n that_o it_o do_v not_o enjoy_v as_o absolute_o its_o own_o outshut_v all_o other_o church_n neither_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o belief_n neither_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o people_n neither_o the_o true_a and_o lawful_a succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n that_o the_o authority_n thereof_o be_v not_o infallible_a and_o that_o it_o be_v full_a of_o error_n and_o corruption_n london_n print_v by_o w._n godbid_v and_o be_v to_o be_v sell_v by_o moses_n pitt_n at_o the_o angel_n over-against_o the_o little_a north_n door_n of_o st._n paul_n be_v church_n 1677._o dedication_n a_o monseigneur_n illustrissime_fw-la et_fw-la reverendissime_fw-la henry_n euéque_fw-fr de_fw-fr londres_n doyen_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr chapelle_n du_fw-fr roy_fw-fr et_fw-fr un_fw-fr des_fw-fr signior_n du_fw-mi conseil_n priué_fw-fr de_fw-fr sa_fw-fr majesté_fw-fr monseigneur_fw-fr ce_fw-fr n'est_fw-fr pas_fw-fr d'aujourd'huy_fw-fr que_fw-fr ceux_fw-fr qui_fw-fr quittent_a le_fw-fr party_n de_fw-fr l'erreur_fw-fr pour_fw-fr ambrasser_n la_fw-fr verité_fw-fr se_fw-fr trouvent_fw-fr exposez_fw-fr à _fw-fr la_fw-fr persecution_n du_fw-fr monde_fw-fr et_fw-fr ce_fw-fr n'est_fw-fr pas_fw-fr d'aujourd'huy_fw-fr non_fw-fr plus_fw-fr qu'ils_fw-fr ont_fw-fr besoin_fw-fr de_fw-fr puissant_n protecteurs_fw-fr pour_fw-fr les_fw-fr deffendre_fw-fr contre_fw-fr l'injustice_n votre_fw-fr grandeur_n sçait_fw-fr que_fw-fr st._n paul_n n'eut_fw-fr pas_fw-fr plûtôt_fw-fr le_fw-fr tître_fw-fr et_fw-fr la_fw-fr quality_n de_fw-fr nouveau_fw-fr converty_n qu'il_fw-fr se_fw-fr trouva_fw-fr abandonné_fw-fr et_fw-fr persecuté_fw-fr de_fw-fr toute_fw-fr la_fw-fr terre_fw-fr il_fw-fr a_fw-fr beau_fw-fr alleguer_n aux_fw-fr juifs_fw-fr les_fw-fr motifs_fw-fr de_fw-fr sa_fw-fr conversion_n disputer_fw-fr contre_fw-fr eux_fw-fr et_fw-fr les_fw-fr confondre_fw-fr les_fw-fr juifs_fw-fr n'en_fw-fr sont_fw-fr pas_fw-fr pour_fw-fr cela_fw-fr moins_fw-fr enragez_fw-fr contre_fw-fr luy_fw-fr ces_n méchant_v s'imaginent_a toûjours_fw-fr que_fw-fr les_fw-fr motifs_fw-fr qui_fw-fr ont_fw-fr obligé_fw-fr paul_n à _fw-fr quitter_fw-fr la_fw-fr religion_n de_fw-fr ses_fw-fr peer_n pour_fw-fr embrasser_n la_fw-fr pureté_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'evangile_a ne_fw-fr sont_fw-fr autres_fw-fr que_fw-fr l'inconstance_n de_fw-fr son_fw-fr esprit_fw-fr ou_fw-fr le_fw-fr desir_fw-fr dela_n nouveauté_fw-fr et_fw-fr dans_fw-fr cette_fw-fr pensée_fw-fr ils_fw-fr le_fw-fr regardent_a comme_fw-fr un_fw-fr deserteur_fw-fr et_fw-fr comme_fw-fr un_fw-fr apostate_n ils_fw-fr luy_fw-fr dressent_n des_fw-fr embûches_fw-fr ils_fw-fr font_n des_fw-fr complot_n et_fw-fr des_fw-fr conspiration_n pour_fw-fr le_fw-fr mettre_fw-fr à _fw-fr mort_fw-fr et_fw-fr s'imaginent_a qu'ils_fw-fr ne_fw-fr peuvent_fw-fr rendre_fw-fr à _fw-fr dieu_fw-fr un_fw-fr service_fw-fr plus_fw-fr religieux_fw-fr que_fw-fr de_fw-fr s'obliger_fw-la par_fw-fr un_fw-fr voeu_fw-fr solemnel_n à _fw-fr ne_fw-fr point_fw-fr boire_fw-fr ny_fw-fr manger_n jusqu'à _fw-fr ce_fw-fr qu'ils_fw-fr ayent_n trempé_fw-fr leur_fw-fr mains_fw-fr dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr sang_fw-fr de_fw-fr paul_n st._n paul_n est_fw-fr obligé_fw-fr de_fw-fr s'enfuïr_fw-fr il_fw-fr faut_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr sort_n de_fw-fr damas_n par_fw-fr dessus_fw-fr les_fw-fr murailles_fw-fr pour_fw-fr éviter_fw-la la_fw-fr fureur_fw-fr de_fw-fr ses_fw-fr ennemis_fw-fr et_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr se_fw-fr retire_n à _fw-fr jerusalem_n pour_fw-fr estre_fw-fr plus_fw-fr en_fw-fr seureté_fw-fr et_fw-fr la_fw-fr st._n paul_n tout_o vase_n d'election_n qu'il_fw-fr est_fw-fr il_fw-fr a_fw-fr le_fw-fr déplaisir_fw-fr de_fw-fr voir_fw-fr que_fw-fr les_fw-fr disciple_n même_fw-fr évitent_a sa_fw-fr compagnie_fw-fr le_fw-fr craignent_fw-la et_fw-la ne_fw-la se_fw-la fient_fw-la pas_fw-fr à _fw-fr luy_fw-fr par_fw-fr ce_fw-fr qu'ils_fw-fr ont_fw-fr peur_fw-fr que_fw-fr sa_fw-fr conversion_n ne_fw-fr soit_fw-fr une_fw-fr conversion_n feinte_v imparfaite_n et_fw-fr dissimulée_fw-fr et_fw-fr il_fw-fr saut_z qu'il_fw-fr ait_fw-fr recours_fw-fr à _fw-fr un_fw-fr apôtre_fw-fr qui_fw-fr luy_fw-fr serve_v de_fw-fr protecteur_fw-fr qui_fw-fr le_fw-fr present_n aux_fw-fr disciple_n et_fw-fr qui_fw-fr leur_fw-fr fasse_n entendre_fw-fr les_fw-fr moyens_fw-fr admirables_fw-fr dont_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr s'estoit_fw-fr servy_a pour_fw-fr operer_fw-la sa_fw-fr conversion_n voilà _fw-fr l'estat_fw-la où_fw-fr se_fw-fr trouvoit_fw-fr reduit_fw-fr st._n paul_n aprés_fw-fr sa_fw-fr conversion_n et_fw-fr c'est_fw-fr aussi_fw-fr l'estat_fw-mi monseigneur_n où_fw-fr se_fw-fr trouve_fw-fr reduit_fw-fr encore_fw-fr en_fw-fr ce_fw-fr siecle_fw-mi un_fw-fr homme_fw-fr nouvellement_fw-fr converty_n d'un_fw-fr costé_fw-fr ceux_fw-fr desquels_fw-fr il_fw-fr abandonne_fw-fr le_fw-fr party_n deviennent_fw-fr ses_fw-fr plus_fw-fr cruel_n et_fw-fr plus_fw-fr irreconciliable_n ennemis_fw-fr ils_fw-fr ne_fw-fr le_fw-fr menacent_fw-la de_fw-fr rien_fw-fr moins_fw-fr que_fw-fr de_fw-fr le_fw-fr perdre_fw-fr et_fw-fr si_fw-fr leur_fw-fr voeux_fw-fr et_fw-fr leur_fw-fr dessins_n pernicieux_fw-fr n'estoient_fw-fr arrestez_fw-fr par_fw-fr la_fw-fr severité_fw-fr des_fw-fr joy_n on_o verroit_fw-fr bientôt_fw-fr les_fw-fr consequence_n tragiques_n de_fw-fr leur_fw-fr zele_n indiscreet_a et_fw-fr passionné_fw-fr d'un_fw-fr autre_fw-fr côté_fw-fr un_fw-fr grand_fw-fr nombre_fw-fr de_fw-fr ceux_fw-fr avec_fw-fr lesquels_fw-fr il_fw-fr fait_fw-fr profession_n dela_n pureté_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'evangile_a ne_o see_v veulent_a point_n fire_n à _fw-fr luy_fw-fr ils_fw-fr le_fw-fr fuyent_n ils_fw-fr le_fw-fr craignent_fw-la pour_fw-fr les_fw-fr mêmes_fw-fr raisons_fw-fr pour_fw-fr lesquelles_fw-fr les_fw-fr disciple_n craignoient_fw-fr paul_n ils_fw-fr ont_fw-fr peur_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr ne_fw-fr soit_fw-fr pas_fw-fr veritablement_n converty_n ils_fw-fr craignent_fw-la que_fw-fr sa_fw-fr conversion_n ne_fw-fr soit_fw-fr interressée_fw-fr et_fw-fr imparfaite_n ou_fw-fr du_fw-fr moins_fw-fr ils_fw-fr craignent_fw-la qu'elle_fw-fr ne_fw-fr soit_fw-fr pas_fw-fr de_fw-fr durée_n et_fw-fr qu'aprés_fw-fr avoir_fw-fr demeuré_fw-fr quelque_fw-fr temps_fw-fr parmy_a eux_fw-fr il_fw-fr ne_fw-fr return_n à _fw-fr son_fw-fr erreur_fw-fr et_fw-fr ne_fw-fr deviene_fw-fr encore_fw-fr une_fw-fr fois_fw-fr le_fw-fr persecuteur_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'evangile_a et_fw-fr dela_n verité_fw-fr que_fw-fr deviendra_fw-fr dans_fw-fr cet_fw-fr estate_n un_fw-fr pavure_fw-fr nouveau_fw-fr converty_n pour_v ceux_fw-fr dont_fw-fr il_fw-fr a_fw-fr quitté_fw-fr les_fw-fr erreur_n et_fw-fr qui_fw-fr le_fw-fr persecutent_n sans_fw-fr misericorde_fw-la et_fw-fr sans_fw-fr charité_fw-fr il_fw-fr n'a_fw-fr que_fw-fr des_fw-fr prieres_fw-fr à _fw-fr fair_a à _fw-fr l'eternel_n pour_fw-fr leur_fw-fr conversion_n dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr temps_fw-fr même_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr est_fw-fr le_fw-fr plus_fw-fr cruellement_fw-fr persecuté_fw-fr et_fw-fr il_fw-fr leave_n incessament_fw-mi les_fw-fr mains_fw-fr vers_fw-la le_fw-fr ciel_fw-fr pour_fw-fr reconnoistre_fw-fr que_fw-fr les_fw-fr pechez_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr a_fw-fr commis_fw-la sont_fw-fr les_fw-fr soul_n cause_v qui_fw-la attirent_fw-la sur_fw-fr sa_fw-fr testae_fw-la toutes_fw-fr ces_fw-fr persecution_n mais_n à _fw-fr l'égard_fw-fr de_fw-fr ceux_fw-fr avec_fw-fr lesquels_fw-fr il_fw-fr fait_fw-fr profession_n d'une_fw-fr même_fw-fr foy_fw-fr il_fw-fr a_fw-fr besoin_fw-fr aussi_fw-fr bien_fw-fr que_fw-fr st._n paul_n d'un_fw-fr puissant_a protecteur_fw-fr qui_fw-fr soit_fw-fr son_fw-fr avocat_fw-la qui_fw-la parle_fw-fr en_fw-fr sa_fw-fr faveur_fw-fr et_fw-fr qui_fw-fr fasse_n connoistre_fw-fr aux_fw-fr peuples_fw-fr que_fw-fr sa_fw-fr conversion_n n'est_fw-fr pas_fw-fr l'ouvrage_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'interrest_n the_o l'inconstance_n ou_fw-fr dela_n necessité_fw-fr mais_fw-fr que_fw-fr c'est_fw-fr un_fw-fr ovurage_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr et_fw-fr un_fw-fr effet_fw-fr de_fw-fr ses_fw-fr misericordes_fw-la
cydevant_a est_fw-fr tombée_fw-fr dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr corruption_n et_fw-fr dans_fw-fr l_o erreur_fw-fr §_o 1._o corruption_n horrible_a dans_fw-fr ses_fw-fr moeurs_fw-fr p._n 80._o §_o 2._o erreur_n extremement_n grossiere_n dans_fw-fr sa_fw-fr doctrine_n pag._n 88_o conclusion_n generale_fw-mi que_fw-fr j'estois_fw-fr engagé_fw-fr de_fw-fr sortir_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr de_fw-fr rome_n aprés_fw-fr que_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr m'en_fw-fr eut_fw-fr fait_fw-fr connoître_fw-fr les_fw-fr erreur_n par_fw-fr les_fw-fr degrés_fw-fr que_fw-fr j'ay_fw-fr marqués_fw-fr dans_fw-fr les_fw-fr deux_fw-fr party_n de_fw-fr ce_fw-fr discourse_n pag._n 88_o §_o 1._o l'occasion_n d'un_fw-fr sermon_n que_fw-fr je_fw-fr préchay_fw-mi sur_fw-fr le_fw-fr sujet_fw-fr du_fw-fr sacrament_n i_o rappella_fw-mi dans_fw-fr l'esprit_fw-fr toutes_fw-fr les_fw-fr idées_fw-fr que_fw-fr j'avois_fw-fr des_fw-fr erreur_n de_fw-fr rome_n pag._n 91._o §_o 2._o les_fw-fr repugnance_n que_fw-fr je_fw-fr souffris_fw-fr et_fw-fr les_fw-fr difficultés_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr i_o falut_fw-fr surmonter_v pag._n 94._o §_o 3._o les_fw-fr raisons_fw-fr que_fw-fr je_fw-fr meditay_n dans_fw-fr mon_fw-fr esprit_fw-fr pour_fw-fr differer_n ma_fw-fr conversion_n pag._n 96._o §_o 4._o dieu_fw-fr par_fw-fr sa_fw-fr misericorde_fw-la i_o fait_fw-fr vivement_n comprendre_fw-fr le_fw-fr grand_fw-fr peché_fw-fr que_fw-fr c'est_fw-fr que_fw-fr de_fw-fr s'opposer_n au_fw-fr saint_n esprit_fw-fr et_fw-fr ainsi_fw-fr acheve_fw-mi ma_fw-fr conversion_n en_fw-fr i_o faisant_fw-fr genereusement_n abandonner_fw-fr la_fw-fr communion_n de_fw-fr rome_n pag._n 101._o table_n introduction_n §_o 1._o the_o reason_n wherefore_o i_o have_v be_v engage_v to_o write_v these_o memoires_n pag._n 1._o §_o 2._o that_o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o man_n who_o do_v live_v in_o the_o error_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v a_o very_a great_a miracle_n pag._n 5._o §_o 3._o after_o what_o manner_n and_o by_o what_o degree_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n make_v i_o understand_v my_o error_n pag._n 9_o first_o part_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o ground_v neither_o upon_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n chap._n i._n how_o i_o understand_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o ground_v upon_o the_o scripture_n §_o 1._o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n dispose_v i_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o error_n of_o rome_n pag._n 11._o §_o 2._o the_o error_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n whereof_o i_o be_v persuade_v make_v i_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n many_o difficulty_n many_o insufficiency_n and_o many_o contradiction_n pap_n 16._o §_o 3._o circumstance_n which_o do_v contribute_v to_o hasten_v my_o conversion_n pag._n 22._o §_o 4._o conclusion_n of_o this_o chapter_n that_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n pag._n 26._o chap._n ii_o how_o i_o understand_v that_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o ground_v upon_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n nor_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n introduction_n the_o read_n of_o the_o book_n concern_v the_o perpetuity_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o occasion_n to_o i_o to_o examine_v in_o particular_a the_o belief_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n about_o that_o matter_n pag._n 30._o division_n of_o the_o error_n of_o rome_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n pag._n 34._o section_n i._o that_o the_o belief_n of_o rome_n about_o the_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v a_o new_a doctrine_n in_o the_o church_n i._n first_o proof_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o argument_n wherewith_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n have_v wont_a to_o dispute_v against_o the_o heathen_n pag._n 36._o ii_o second_o proof_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o reason_n wherewith_o the_o same_o father_n have_v wont_a to_o dispute_v against_o the_o heretic_n pag._n 41._o iii_o three_o proof_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o manner_n whereafter_o the_o father_n have_v wont_a to_o speak_v of_o the_o holy_a saerament_fw-mi pag._n 44._o iu._n four_o proof_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o novelty_n of_o the_o doctrine_n teach_v transubstantiation_n pag._n 48_o section_n ii_o that_o that_o which_o be_v teach_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o doctrine_n contrary_n to_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n i._o in_o what_o sense_n it_o be_v true_a to_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n pag._n 50._o ii_o that_o the_o pretend_a propitiatory_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n pag._n 53._o iii_o what_o have_v give_v occasion_n to_o that_o error_n and_o the_o degree_n of_o corruption_n which_o bring_v forth_o that_o belief_n pag._n 56._o iv_o that_o the_o horrid_a abuse_n which_o be_v slide_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o offer_v their_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n be_v a_o practice_n contrary_a to_o that_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n pag._n 59_o section_n iii_o that_o the_o manner_n of_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v quite_o different_a and_o very_o much_o oppose_v to_o that_o to_o which_o they_o be_v use_v in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n i._o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n they_o give_v the_o communion_n to_o all_o the_o people_n under_o both_o kind_n they_o worship_v not_o the_o host_n and_o celebrate_v not_o the_o holy_a mystery_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n pag._n 64._o ii_o the_o beginning_n of_o all_o the_o error_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n pag._n 70._o 1._o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o abridgement_n of_o the_o cup._n pag._n 71._o 2._o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o host_n pag._n 74._o 3._o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n pag._n 78._o conclusion_n of_o the_o first_o part._n that_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n nor_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n pag._n 80._o second_o part._n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n that_o its_o authority_n be_v not_o infallible_a and_o that_o it_o be_v full_a of_o corruption_n and_o error_n introduction_n the_o divine_a providence_n bring_v forth_o some_o occasion_n which_o make_v i_o resolve_v to_o examine_v the_o very_a first_o ground_n of_o the_o question_n concern_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n pag._n 1._o 1._o the_o occasion_n that_o i_o have_v to_o examine_v anew_o all_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n all_o which_o i_o reduce_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o church_n pag._n 3._o 2._o the_o occasion_n that_o i_o have_v to_o doubt_v of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n make_v i_o resolve_v to_o examine_v again_o and_o without_o passion_n upon_o which_o be_v ground_v that_o authority_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n boast_v so_o much_o pag._n 6._o 3._o circumstance_n wherewith_o i_o begin_v to_o examine_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o what_o i_o do_v design_n in_o the_o rehearsal_n of_o they_o pag._n 12._o chap._n i._n of_o the_o pretend_a ground_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n pag._n 16._o section_n i._n that_o antiquity_n multitude_n and_o succession_n be_v not_o privilege_n which_o ever_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v enjoy_v above_o all_o other_o church_n pag._n 20._o §_o 1._o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o the_o elder_a of_o all_o the_o church_n pag._n 21_o §_o 2._o that_o the_o multitude_n be_v not_o on_o the_o roman_a church_n side_n pag._n 25._o §_o 3._o that_o other_o church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o roman_a have_v their_o succession_n from_o bishop_n to_o bishop_n from_o the_o very_a apostle_n pag._n 29._o section_n ii_o that_o neither_o antiquity_n neither_o multitude_n neither_o succession_n be_v not_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o consequent_o that_o a_o church_n may_v have_v they_o all_o and_o with_o they_o all_o be_v a_o heretical_a church_n pag._n 32._o §_o 1._o that_o antiquity_n be_v not_o a_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n pag._n 33._o §_o 2._o that_o the_o multitude_n be_v not_o a_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n pag._n 39_o §_o 3._o that_o the_o succession_n be_v not_o a_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n pag._n 45._o conclusion_n that_o it_o be_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o true_a doctrine_n from_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v a_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o have_v not_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o doctrine_n have_v no_o reason_n to_o boast_v neither_o of_o its_o antiquity_n neither_o of_o the_o multitude_n neither_o
article_n de_fw-fr foy._n et_fw-fr dire_fw-fr la_fw-fr même_fw-fr choose_v de_fw-fr bonne_fw-fr foy_fw-fr du_fw-fr purgatoire_n des_fw-fr indulgence_n de_fw-fr l'_fw-fr invocation_n des_fw-fr saint_n et_fw-fr des_fw-fr autres_fw-fr article_n et_fw-la non_fw-la pas_fw-fr s'oppiniâtrer_fw-fr à _fw-fr vouloir_fw-fr trouver_fw-fr dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr des_fw-fr article_n de_fw-fr foy_fw-fr dont_fw-fr elle_fw-fr n'â_fw-fr jamais_fw-fr eu_fw-fr la_fw-fr moindre_fw-fr connoissance_fw-fr de_fw-fr cette_fw-fr maniere_n il_fw-fr ne_fw-fr rest_n plus_fw-fr qu'à _fw-fr examiner_n sâ_n l'authorité_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a est_fw-fr infaillible_a ou_fw-fr si_fw-fr elle_fw-fr ne_fw-fr l'est_fw-fr pas_fw-fr voilà _fw-fr le_fw-fr point_n indivifible_a sur_fw-fr lequel_fw-fr je_fw-fr fixois_fw-fr toute_fw-fr ma_fw-fr religion_n c'est_fw-fr la_fw-fr où_fw-fr je_fw-fr riduisois_fw-fr toutes_fw-fr les_fw-fr question_n de_fw-fr controverse_n et_fw-fr le_fw-fr lien_n que_fw-fr i_o tenoit_fw-fr attaché_fw-fr à _fw-fr lâ_n communion_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a j'exeminay_n dont_fw-fr cette_fw-fr question_n de_fw-fr l'infaillibilite_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a mais_fw-fr soit_fw-fr que_fw-fr j'eusse_fw-fr peur_fw-fr de_fw-fr trouver_fw-fr cette_fw-fr infaillibilité_n aussâ_n mal_fw-fr fondée_fw-fr que_fw-fr la_fw-fr doctrine_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr transubstantiation_n soit_fw-fr que_fw-fr l'ambition_n que_fw-fr j'avois_fw-fr de_fw-fr soûtenir_fw-fr avec_fw-fr honneur_fw-fr le_fw-fr traité_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr que_fw-la l'on_n m'engageoit_fw-fr en_fw-fr ce_fw-fr temps_fw-fr la_fw-fr de_fw-fr soûtenir_fw-fr dans_fw-fr des_fw-fr thesis_n publiquesâ_n m'esbloüist_o et_fw-fr m'aveugla_fw-mi pour_fw-fr m'empécher_fw-fr de_fw-fr décovurir_fw-fr la_fw-fr verité_fw-fr soit_fw-fr que_fw-fr la_fw-fr grace_n ne_fw-fr trouva_fw-fr pas_fw-fr à _fw-fr propos_fw-fr en_fw-fr ce_fw-fr temps_fw-fr la_fw-fr d'achever_fw-fr l'ouvrage_fw-fr de_fw-fr ma_fw-fr conversion_n et_fw-fr qu'elle_fw-fr voulut_fw-fr laisser_fw-fr meurir_fw-fr et_fw-fr enraciner_n bien_fw-fr avant_fw-fr dans_fw-fr mon_fw-fr esprit_fw-fr les_fw-fr raisin_n que_fw-fr j'avois_fw-fr meditées_fw-fr afin_fw-fr de_fw-fr m'affermir_v davantage_fw-fr dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr verité_fw-fr de_fw-fr sa_fw-fr sainte_fw-fr parole_fw-fr je_fw-fr trouvay_n des_fw-fr preuves_fw-mi et_fw-fr des_fw-fr raisin_n tant_fw-fr bonnes_fw-fr que_fw-fr mauvaises_fw-fr je_fw-fr me_fw-it persuaday_o le_fw-fr premier_fw-fr afin_fw-fr de_fw-fr persuader_n plus_fw-fr aisément_fw-fr les_fw-fr autres_fw-fr et_fw-fr je_fw-fr soûtin_n dans_fw-fr mes_fw-fr thesis_n que_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a et_fw-fr même_fw-fr que_fw-fr le_fw-fr pape_n seul_fw-fr estoit_fw-fr infaillible_a quand_fw-fr il_fw-fr détermine_n quelque_fw-fr choose_v de_fw-fr foy._n cette_fw-fr persuasion_n i_o retenant_n dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a je_fw-fr commançay_fw-fr à _fw-fr m'adoucir_n et_fw-fr à _fw-fr changer_n de_fw-fr discourse_n et_fw-fr au_fw-fr lieu_fw-fr que_fw-fr j'avois_fw-fr consideré_fw-la les_fw-fr article_n de_fw-fr foy_fw-fr de_fw-fr cette_fw-fr eglise_fw-fr comme_fw-fr des_fw-fr erreur_n parcequ'elles_fw-fr n'estoient_fw-fr pas_fw-fr conform_v à _fw-fr la_fw-fr doctrine_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr et_fw-fr à _fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n des_fw-fr peres_n je_fw-fr ne_fw-fr les_fw-fr considerois_fw-mi plus_fw-fr que_fw-fr comme_fw-fr des_fw-fr nouvautés_fw-fr qui_fw-fr n'estoient_fw-fr pas_fw-fr criminelle_n puisque_fw-fr je_fw-fr supposois_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr de_fw-fr rome_n entant_a qu'infaillible_a dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr droit_n de_fw-fr produire_n tous_fw-fr les_fw-fr jours_fw-fr ou_fw-fr de_fw-fr déclarer_n de_fw-fr nouveaux_fw-fr article_n de_fw-fr foy._n dans_fw-fr cette_fw-fr pensée_fw-fr lorsque_fw-fr quelque_fw-fr personne_fw-fr d'estude_n i_o demandoit_fw-fr mon_fw-fr sentiment_n en_fw-fr particulier_fw-fr sur_fw-fr quelque_fw-fr question_n de_fw-fr theologie_n je_fw-fr répondois_fw-fr simplement_n selon_fw-fr mon_fw-fr opinion_n et_fw-fr je_fw-fr râ_n duisois_fw-fr toutes_fw-fr les_fw-fr question_n à _fw-fr l'authorit_fw-fr infaillible_a de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a mais_fw-fr quand_fw-fr j'estois_fw-fr obligé_fw-fr de_fw-fr parler_fw-fr en_fw-fr public_a eâ_n devant_fw-fr le_fw-fr peuple_n je_fw-fr i_o eroyois_fw-fr obligé_fw-fr de_fw-fr peur_fw-fr de_fw-fr scandaliser_fw-fr les_fw-fr foibles_fw-fr de_fw-fr i_o serviâ_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr method_n dont_fw-fr tous_fw-fr les_fw-fr autres_fw-fr oâ_n coûtume_fw-fr de_fw-fr se_fw-fr servir_fw-fr et_fw-fr d'apporter_n quoyqâ_n contre_fw-fr ma_fw-fr propre_fw-fr persuasion_n des_fw-fr passage_n dâ_n l'escriture_n et_fw-fr des_fw-fr authorités_fw-fr des_fw-fr ancient_n peres_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr pour_fw-fr prouver_fw-fr les_fw-fr article_n de_fw-fr foy_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr de_fw-fr rome_n voilà _fw-fr quelle_fw-fr estoit_fw-fr ma_fw-fr maniere_n d'agir_fw-it eâ_n ce_fw-fr temps_fw-fr la_fw-fr auquel_fw-fr la_fw-fr seule_fw-fr persuasion_n ãâã_d l'infaillibilité_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr de_fw-fr rome_n ãâã_d retenoit_fw-fr dans_fw-fr sa_fw-fr communion_n fin_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr premiere_n party_n memoires_n introduction_n §_o 1._o the_o reason_n wherefore_o i_o have_v be_v engage_v to_o write_v these_o memoirs_fw-fr i_o do_v consider_v myself_o as_o a_o public_a sinner_n since_o i_o do_v profess_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n a_o doctrine_n contrary_n to_o the_o gospel_n i_o look_v upon_o the_o life_n that_o i_o lead_v there_o as_o a_o express_a apostasy_n from_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o i_o look_v upon_o all_o the_o error_n which_o i_o teach_v as_o so_o many_o public_a and_o scandalous_a heresy_n but_o after_o i_o have_v consider_v myself_o as_o a_o scandalous_a heretic_n i_o consider_v also_o that_o i_o make_v against_o all_o my_o heresy_n a_o solemn_a recantation_n after_o i_o have_v look_v upon_o myself_o as_o one_o that_o be_v natural_o engage_v to_o be_v a_o apostata_fw-la from_o the_o gospel_n i_o consider_v i_o have_v be_v raise_v up_o from_o that_o apostasy_n by_o the_o profession_n that_o i_o make_v two_o year_n since_o of_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o a_o word_n after_o i_o have_v consider_v myself_o as_o a_o public_a sinner_n engage_v by_o my_o profession_n to_o seduce_v the_o people_n and_o to_o darken_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o deceive_v those_o who_o i_o be_v to_o teach_v i_o do_v consider_v myself_o as_o a_o public_a penitent_n who_o have_v be_v two_o year_n in_o the_o first_o degree_n of_o penitence_n in_o the_o order_n of_o hearer_n as_o it_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o holy_a canon_n 26._o canon_n council_n nicen_n can_v 11._o st._n basil_n epist_n ad_fw-la amph._n cap._n 26._o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n come_v to_o present_v himself_o to_o my_o lord_n the_o bishop_n beseech_v they_o to_o receive_v he_o into_o the_o church_n that_o he_o may_v by_o the_o step_v which_o be_v mark_v in_o the_o same_o canon_n get_v up_o into_o the_o state_n of_o light_n and_o faith_n at_o which_o he_o be_v to_o aim_v after_o his_o baptism_n and_o from_o which_o his_o error_n drive_v he_o far_o away_o and_o whereas_o i_o regard_v the_o bishop_n as_o my_o natural_a superior_n and_o as_o so_o many_o judge_n appoint_v to_o declare_v unto_o i_o the_o will_n of_o god_n i_o find_v myself_o oblige_v to_o give_v they_o a_o account_n of_o my_o conduct_n and_o to_o tell_v they_o plain_o the_o mean_n which_o god_n have_v use_v to_o bring_v i_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o holy_a word_n this_o be_v the_o first_o reason_n which_o oblige_v i_o to_o write_v another_o reason_n be_v that_o i_o do_v consider_v myself_o as_o a_o man_n take_v out_o of_o a_o great_a captivity_n and_o deliver_v out_o of_o a_o very_a dark_a prison_n when_o god_n have_v deliver_v st._n peter_n out_o of_o prison_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o a_o angel_n who_o he_o send_v to_o he_o the_o scripture_n make_v i_o understand_v that_o the_o faithful_a compass_v he_o round_o about_o to_o hear_v he_o to_o who_o st._n peter_n 12.17_o peter_n act._n 12.17_o rehearse_v the_o marvellous_a mean_n which_o god_n have_v use_v to_o deliver_v he_o out_o of_o captivity_n i_o do_v not_o question_n but_o that_o the_o godly_a people_n zealous_a for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n for_o the_o purity_n of_o his_o gospel_n and_o for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o hear_v say_v that_o god_n have_v be_v please_v to_o deliver_v one_o of_o their_o brethren_n out_o of_o the_o captivity_n of_o the_o devil_n out_o of_o the_o prison_n of_o the_o pope_n will_v come_v present_o to_o meet_v he_o to_o inquire_v the_o mean_n which_o god_n have_v use_v in_o bring_v he_o out_o of_o so_o great_a a_o captivity_n ah_o tell_v we_o a_o little_a say_v that_o people_n holy_o curious_a which_o be_v the_o motive_n of_o your_o conversion_n be_v it_o not_o a_o very_a great_a trouble_n to_o you_o to_o part_v from_o all_o the_o friend_n you_o have_v to_o forsake_v all_o your_o acquaintance_n to_o come_v to_o live_v in_o a_o foreign_a country_n i_o think_v the_o common_a people_n under_o the_o pope_n dominion_n live_v without_o any_o knowledge_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n ah_o that_o his_o divine_a majesty_n will_v be_v please_v to_o lighten_v they_o with_o his_o marvellous_a truth_n i_o make_v no_o question_n but_o that_o all_o the_o learned_a man_n and_o all_o the_o priest_n who_o enjoy_v the_o liberty_n of_o read_v the_o scripture_n may_v take_v a_o perfect_a notice_n of_o the_o error_n of_o rome_n ah_o that_o god_n will_v be_v please_v to_o inspire_v
they_o with_o the_o zeal_n of_o their_o salvation_n and_o to_o turn_v away_o their_o heart_n out_o of_o error_n as_o he_o do_v you_o ah_o how_o many_o thanks_o be_v you_o to_o give_v to_o god_n almighty_a that_o he_o have_v draw_v you_o out_o of_o the_o tyranny_n where_o you_o be_v bear_v but_o we_o shall_v be_v very_o glad_a to_o hear_v the_o particularity_n of_o your_o conversion_n and_o it_o be_v to_o rehearse_v they_o that_o i_o undertake_v this_o discourse_n to_o engage_v you_o to_o join_v your_o thanksgiving_n to_o i_o for_o to_o thank_v he_o to_o praise_v he_o and_o to_o glorify_v he_o admire_v the_o greatness_n of_o his_o goodness_n and_o the_o wonder_n he_o do_v work_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o who_o he_o have_v ãâ¦ã_o §_o 2._o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o man_n who_o do_v live_v in_o the_o error_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v a_o very_a great_a miracle_n saint_n peter_n chain_n break_v by_o themselves_o many_o blind_a man_n recover_v their_o eye_n many_o sick_a body_n heal_v many_o dead_a raise_v up_o again_o these_o be_v very_o great_a miracle_n and_o marvellous_a deed_n of_o the_o highest_n mighty_a hand_n but_o the_o divine_a alteration_n which_o grace_n work_v in_o our_o soul_n be_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o marvellous_a more_o worthy_a of_o god_n majesty_n better_a become_a his_o almightiness_n the_o man_n who_o the_o finger_n of_o god_n have_v touch_v to_o work_v the_o miracle_n of_o his_o conversion_n do_v not_o know_v himself_o any_o more_o so_o considerable_a be_v that_o change_n he_o feel_v his_o soul_n entire_o persuade_v of_o certain_a truth_n which_o god_n have_v reveal_v which_o he_o regard_v heretofore_o as_o so_o many_o lie_v and_o he_o find_v himself_o deliver_v from_o a_o multitude_n of_o error_n which_o he_o worship_v as_o the_o truth_n itself_o peradventure_o you_o will_v have_v suppose_v that_o the_o prejudication_n of_o error_n which_o he_o find_v in_o his_o mind_n from_o his_o childhood_n may_v be_v like_o so_o many_o petty_a tyrant_n and_o young_a devil_n who_o perplex_v he_o who_o vex_v he_o who_o trouble_v the_o quietness_n of_o his_o conscience_n and_o raise_v up_o in_o he_o dimness_n and_o darkness_n steal_v from_o his_o eye_n the_o very_a light_n of_o truth_n you_o be_v mistake_v grace_n give_v he_o strength_n to_o dissipate_v the_o evil_a spirit_n and_o to_o withstand_v error_n he_o do_v enjoy_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n with_o a_o peace_n and_o quietness_n which_o can_v be_v express_v and_o as_o the_o dawn_n of_o the_o day_n which_o come_v first_o after_o night_n be_v receive_v by_o all_o creature_n with_o more_o pleasant_a and_o more_o delightful_a welcome_n than_o the_o very_a light_n of_o noon_n so_o i_o dare_v say_v there_o happen_v sometime_o the_o same_o thing_n in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n a_o soul_n new_o lighten_v enjoy_v sometime_o the_o light_n with_o more_o pleasure_n and_o sweetness_n than_o do_v those_o who_o have_v be_v all_o their_o life_n long_o in_o the_o broad_a daylight_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o a_o man_n shall_v live_v in_o such_o a_o tranquillity_n of_o conscience_n as_o the_o saint_n themselves_o enjoy_v in_o heaven_n that_o he_o shall_v find_v pleasure_n and_o sweetness_n in_o be_v persuade_v of_o a_o truth_n which_o he_o look_v upon_o before_o as_o a_o heresy_n and_o do_v not_o think_v of_o without_o horror_n it_o be_v a_o prodigious_a work_n of_o the_o high_a it_o be_v almighty_a god_n mighty_a hand_n a_o christian_a who_o have_v prostitute_v himself_o to_o all_o his_o passion_n who_o have_v dive_v into_o all_o kind_n of_o vice_n and_o deboachment_n who_o have_v transgress_v all_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n when_o grace_n touch_v and_o convert_v he_o it_o be_v a_o great_a miracle_n yet_o that_o man_n who_o prostitute_v himself_o to_o all_o kind_n of_o vice_n do_v never_o conceive_v any_o horror_n against_o those_o who_o follow_v virtue_n he_o do_v consider_v virtue_n as_o a_o very_a hard_a thing_n but_o not_o as_o a_o abomination_n and_o in_o the_o very_a same_o time_n wherein_o he_o break_v all_o the_o commandment_n he_o think_v not_o that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n to_o keep_v they_o he_o do_v not_o look_v upon_o those_o who_o observe_v they_o as_o so_o many_o monster_n as_o so_o many_o frantic_v as_o a_o people_n who_o deserve_v the_o malediction_n of_o god_n and_o the_o execration_n of_o man_n aught_o to_o be_v exterminate_v out_o of_o the_o world_n with_o sword_n and_o fire_n but_o a_o man_n who_o do_v live_v in_o the_o error_n of_o rome_n before_o god_n have_v heighten_v he_o by_o his_o grace_n he_o look_v upon_o the_o reform_a church_n as_o a_o church_n full_a of_o abomination_n he_o never_o speak_v of_o those_o who_o follow_v that_o church_n but_o with_o imprecation_n and_o curse_v he_o never_o read_v any_o proposition_n of_o their_o doctrine_n but_o present_o he_o add_v a_o anathema_n and_o damn_v they_o to_o the_o pit_n of_o hell_n he_o have_v rather_o have_v the_o conversation_n of_o devil_n than_o that_o of_o a_o protestant_n in_o a_o word_n all_o the_o invective_n rail_n imprecation_n malediction_n anathematization_n he_o can_v heap_v up_o be_v to_o be_v pour_v out_o upon_o those_o who_o do_v profess_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n when_o after_o all_o those_o repugnancy_n and_o estrangements_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o obstacle_n to_o truth_n you_o see_v a_o man_n mollify_v open_v his_o eye_n to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n change_v his_o disposition_n his_o notion_n his_o thought_n and_o all_o his_o manner_n be_v not_o that_o a_o prodigy_n of_o grace_n have_v i_o not_o reason_n to_o say_v that_o this_o miracle_n be_v not_o only_o great_a than_o that_o whereby_o god_n give_v again_o eye_n to_o the_o blind_a life_n to_o the_o dead_a but_o even_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o marvellous_a than_o that_o which_o grace_n work_v in_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o great_a sinner_n §_o 3._o after_o what_o manner_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n make_v i_o understasnd_v my_o error_n the_o lord_n our_o god_n do_v not_o always_o show_v altogether_o at_o once_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o mighty_a power_n nor_o do_v he_o work_v always_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n in_o all_o the_o conversion_n of_o sinner_n he_o speak_v sometime_o with_o a_o thunder_a voice_n which_o altogether_o at_o once_o beat_v down_o dazzle_v and_o convert_v a_o sinner_n and_o it_o be_v with_o such_o a_o voice_n he_o speak_v to_o 9_o to_o act._n 9_o st._n paul_n when_o in_o a_o minute_n of_o time_n he_o turn_v he_o from_o the_o most_o furious_a enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n into_o a_o very_a zealous_a preacher_n of_o the_o same_o gospel_n other_o time_n he_o begin_v to_o speak_v to_o a_o sinner_n soft_o and_o a_o great_a way_n off_o he_o prepare_v he_o he_o prevent_v he_o and_o he_o put_v he_o in_o the_o disposition_n he_o judge_v fit_a for_o his_o conversion_n it_o be_v after_o this_o manner_n he_o convert_v the_o 8._o the_o act._n 8._o eunuch_n of_o great_a authority_n under_o candace_n queen_n of_o the_o aethiopian_n he_o do_v not_o overturn_v he_o out_o of_o his_o chariot_n he_o do_v not_o cast_v he_o to_o the_o ground_n to_o convert_v he_o sudden_o as_o he_o do_v afterward_o st._n paul_n but_o he_o dispoe_v he_o by_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o receive_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o it_o be_v after_o this_o manner_n the_o lord_n have_v be_v please_v to_o draw_v i_o out_o of_o the_o error_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o bring_v i_o through_o his_o great_a mercy_n to_o profess_v here_o free_o the_o purity_n of_o his_o holy_a word_n this_o be_v that_o which_o i_o intend_v to_o rehearse_v in_o all_o this_o discourse_n in_o the_o first_o part_n whereof_o i_o will_v recite_v how_o i_o understand_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o now_o roman_a church_n be_v ground_v neither_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n nor_o upon_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n nor_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o in_o the_o second_o part_n how_o i_o understand_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n that_o its_o authority_n be_v not_o infallible_a and_o that_o it_o be_v full_a of_o corruption_n and_o error_n first_o part_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v ground_v neither_o upon_o the_o scripture_n nor_o upon_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n nor_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n chap._n i._n how_o i_o understand_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v not_o ground_v upon_o the_o scripture_n §._o i._o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n dispose_v i_o beforehand_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o error_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o think_v
the_o bridegroom_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n as_o he_o be_v style_v 31._o style_v de_fw-fr pontif._n roman_a lib._n 2._o cap._n 31._o by_o bellarmin_n if_o they_o do_v signify_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a that_o he_o have_v the_o power_n to_o make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n 10._o faith_n 2.2_o q._n 1._o art_n 10._o as_o thomas_n aquinas_n do_v hold_v if_o those_o place_n of_o scripture_n signify_v all_o these_o proposition_n they_o be_v very_o dark_a we_o must_v confess_v it_o be_v a_o very_a hard_a matter_n to_o follow_v these_o consequence_n since_o they_o be_v contrary_a even_o to_o common_a sense_n that_o place_n of_o st._n paul_n 11.24_o paul_n 1_o corinth_n 11.24_o this_o be_v my_o body_n if_o these_o word_n be_v to_o be_v expound_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n that_o those_o other_o word_n of_o the_o same_o st._n paul_n in_o the_o same_o epistle_n in_o the_o next_o chapter_n 12.27_o chapter_n 1_o corinth_n 12.27_o you_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n this_o place_n be_v very_o easy_a but_o if_o these_o word_n signify_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v transubstantiate_v into_o jesus_n christ_n his_o own_o flesh_n into_o his_o own_o substance_n as_o it_o be_v write_v 2._o write_v sess_n 13._o cap_n 4._o can_n 2._o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n that_o place_n be_v very_o obscure_a there_o be_v not_o in_o all_o the_o scripture_n such_o another_o and_o if_o we_o be_v to_o give_v to_o all_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v alike_o to_o that_o so_o rough_a a_o explication_n to_o understand_v they_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n understand_v that_o of_o st._n paul_n we_o must_v needs_o say_v that_o all_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n be_v transubstantiate_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o a_o 10.7_o a_o joh._n 10.7_o door_n that_o christ_n be_v true_o and_o real_o a_o 1.29_o a_o joh._n 1.29_o lamb_n that_o the_o spiritual_a rock_n which_o follow_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n in_o the_o wilderness_n have_v but_o the_o appearance_n the_o colour_n the_o hardness_n the_o resemblance_n of_o a_o rock_n but_o true_o and_o real_o it_o be_v transubstantiate_v into_o the_o body_n into_o the_o blood_n into_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n because_o the_o scripture_n say_v 10.4_o say_v 1_o cor._n 10.4_o that_o rock_n be_v christ_n and_o how_o horrid_a a_o absurdity_n will_v it_o be_v to_o draw_v such_o consequence_n ah_o we_o must_v confess_v the_o scripture_n be_v very_o difficult_a if_o we_o be_v to_o receive_v such_o interpretation_n beside_o that_o i_o do_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n many_o insufficiency_n scripture_n insufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n i_o think_v it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o christ_n have_v establish_v and_o in_o all_o the_o scripture_n i_o do_v find_v nothing_o of_o it_o i_o know_v it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o rom_n to_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v a_o holy_a thing_n godly_a acceptable_a to_o the_o lord_n and_o profitable_a to_o man_n 25._o man_n sess_n 25._o to_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o saint_n 2._o saint_n sess_n 25._o decr_n 2._o to_o worship_n their_o image_n bone_n and_o relic_n according_a as_o it_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o i_o do_v not_o find_v in_o all_o the_o scripture_n any_o prayer_n direct_v to_o the_o saint_n after_o their_o death_n i_o do_v not_o find_v in_o all_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n nor_o any_o where_o else_o that_o the_o first_o christian_n have_v any_o image_n in_o who_o presence_n they_o say_v their_o prayer_n neither_o do_v we_o read_v they_o have_v any_o casket_n or_o shrine_n wherein_o relic_n be_v keep_v to_o bring_v they_o abroad_o in_o solemn_a procession_n to_o set_v they_o in_o the_o middle_n of_o their_o church_n and_o to_o worship_n they_o there_o wherefore_o i_o say_v sometime_o to_o myself_o alas_o if_o we_o keep_v the_o same_o faith_n as_o the_o first_o christian_n why_o do_v we_o the_o thing_n which_o the_o first_o christian_n never_o do_v why_o do_v we_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o saint_n why_o do_v we_o worship_v their_o image_n and_o bone_n i_o find_v not_o in_o all_o the_o scripture_n indulgency_n or_o purgatory_n in_o short_a i_o think_v myself_o oblige_v to_o beieve_v several_a article_n of_o faith_n of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n in_o the_o scripture_n that_o make_v i_o think_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o insufficient_a book_n and_o that_o every_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o believe_v for_o our_o salvation_n be_v not_o contain_v in_o it_o but_o i_o do_v not_o perceive_v my_o error_n nor_o the_o falsehood_n of_o my_o discourse_n and_o that_o whereas_o i_o do_v conclude_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v insufficient_a because_o i_o do_v not_o find_v in_o it_o all_o those_o article_n i_o shall_v rather_o and_o more_o right_o conclude_v that_o all_o those_o doctrine_n be_v not_o article_n of_o faith_n since_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n these_o first_o glimpse_n of_o truth_n make_v a_o mighty_a impression_n in_o my_o mind_n though_o under_o pretence_n of_o doubt_n difficulty_n and_o insufficiency_n scripture_n contradiction_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o which_o be_v add_v even_o many_o contradiction_n which_o i_o find_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n whereby_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v utter_o subvert_v in_o that_o place_n of_o 4._o of_o 1_o tim._n 4._o st._n paul_n to_o timothy_n now_o the_o spirit_n speak_v express_o that_o in_o the_o latter_a time_n some_o shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n give_v heed_n to_o seduce_a spirit_n and_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n speak_v lie_n in_o hypocrisy_n have_v their_o conscience_n sear_v with_o a_o hot_a iron_n forbid_v to_o marry_v and_o command_v to_o abstain_v from_o meat_n which_o god_n have_v create_v to_o be_v receive_v with_o thanksgiving_n you_o will_v say_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v see_v by_o the_o spirit_n the_o error_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o he_o condemn_v beforehand_o as_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n who_o do_v not_o understand_v that_o these_o word_n do_v utter_o destroy_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o decree_n of_o gracian_a plurimos_fw-la gracian_a distinct_a 82._o can_n propos_fw-fr &_o can_v propos_fw-fr &_o can_v plurimos_fw-la wherein_o the_o marriage_n of_o churchman_n be_v style_v a_o defile_n and_o a_o sacrilege_n doutter_o destory_n the_o commandment_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n wherein_o it_o be_v command_v to_o abstain_v from_o meat_n upon_o the_o pain_n of_o a_o mortal_a sin_n these_o word_n of_o 17._o of_o 1_o cor._n 10.16_o &_o 17._o st._n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v all_o partaker_n of_o that_o one_o bread_n and_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n 28._o chapter_n 1_o cor._n 1â_n v._o 26_o 27_o 28._o as_o often_o as_o you_o eat_v that_o bread_n etc._n etc._n let_v a_o man_n examine_v himself_o and_o so_o let_v he_o eat_v of_o that_o bread_n all_o these_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o mighty_a weight_n to_o incline_v i_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v the_o bread_n which_o be_v break_v 3._o ch._n 1._o §._o 3._o but_o at_o last_o error_n do_v come_v again_o to_o extinguish_v this_o sparkle_n of_o light_n which_o begin_v to_o shine_v in_o my_o soul_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v to_o be_v rule_v modify_v and_o accommodate_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n i_o do_v persuade_v myself_o that_o these_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v rule_v modify_v and_o accommodate_v to_o the_o belief_n of_o rome_n and_o so_o i_o be_v oblige_v to_o look_v upon_o all_o those_o word_n of_o scripture_n as_o so_o many_o contradiction_n §._o 3._o circumstance_n which_o do_v contribute_v to_o hasten_v my_o conversion_n in_o that_o condition_n i_o find_v myself_o divide_v betwixt_o error_n and_o truth_n betwixt_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o error_n bring_v forth_o some_o pretence_n to_o persist_v stubborn_o may_v be_v say_v i_o the_o reason_n wherefore_o i_o come_v to_o so_o many_o difficulty_n insufficiency_n and_o contradiction_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v because_o i_o have_v not_o read_v what_o the_o theologian_n write_v concern_v such_o question_n may_v be_v the_o study_n of_o divinity_n will_v make_v plain_a all_o these_o difficulty_n supply_v all_o these_o insufficiency_n and_o reconcile_v all_o these_o contradiction_n so_o i_o be_v like_a to_o that_o blind_a man_n who_o christ_n
reason_n persuade_v i_o that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n with_o transubstantiation_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n teach_v it_o the_o first_o of_o all_o be_v the_o argument_n which_o the_o holy_a father_n use_v to_o prove_v the_o idol_n of_o the_o heathen_n not_o to_o be_v go_n the_o idol_n you_o worship_v so_o earnest_o say_v 2._o say_v arnobi_fw-la lib._n 6._o lactant._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 2._o they_o to_o the_o heathen_n be_v not_o go_n if_o they_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n they_o can_v raise_v up_o again_o by_o themselves_o therefore_o they_o need_v the_o help_n of_o man_n they_o can_v neither_o open_v their_o eye_n nor_o stir_v out_o of_o the_o place_n where_o they_o have_v be_v set_v nor_o give_v the_o least_o sign_n of_o respiration_n they_o be_v subject_a to_o rustiness_n worm_n and_o corruption_n mouse_n come_v to_o gnaw_v they_o and_o work_v their_o hole_n even_o in_o the_o idol_n themselves_o in_o fine_a the_o door_n of_o your_o temple_n must_v be_v shut_v up_o with_o good_a lock_n lest_o theives_n shall_v steal_v those_o god_n of_o you_o it_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v that_o man_n who_o speak_v thus_o will_v hold_v the_o body_n soul_n and_o divinity_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v real_o present_a in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n will_v not_o they_o have_v have_v reason_n to_o fear_v that_o the_o heathen_n who_o be_v very_o able_a man_n will_v use_v against_o they_o the_o same_o argument_n and_o tell_v they_o your_o host_n be_v not_o a_o god_n neither_o you_o be_v not_o to_o worship_v it_o for_o it_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o same_o conveniency_n and_o accident_n as_o our_o god_n be_v will_v a_o divine_a of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o boldness_n to_o dispute_v against_o the_o heathen_n with_o the_o same_o reason_n which_o the_o first_o christian_n use_v the_o people_n of_o paris_n say_v about_o five_o or_o six_o year_n ago_o they_o have_v steal_v to_o day_n god_n almighty_a out_o of_o st._n sulpitius_n church_n out_o of_o the_o parish_n of_o boulogne_n out_o of_o i_o do_v not_o know_v how_o many_o other_o church_n can_v that_o people_n say_v by_o right_n that_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o idol_n be_v not_o god_n be_v because_o they_o can_v defend_v themselves_o against_o the_o theives_n who_o come_v to_o take_v they_o away_o those_o who_o have_v compose_v the_o rubric_n of_o the_o missal_n wherein_o they_o teach_v what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v in_o case_n the_o host_n be_v fall_v upon_o the_o ground_n in_o case_n that_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o chalice_n be_v spill_v will_v they_o say_v that_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o idol_n be_v not_o god_n be_v because_o when_o they_o be_v fall_v they_o can_v rise_v up_o by_o themselves_o thomas_n aquinas_n and_o other_o doctor_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o do_v suppose_v the_o host_n may_v grow_v mouldy_a that_o worm_n may_v breed_v in_o it_o shall_v they_o dare_v say_v as_o do_v the_o first_o christian_n that_o the_o reason_n why_o we_o be_v not_o to_o worship_n idol_n be_v because_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o rustiness_n worm_n and_o corruption_n a_o man_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o know_v that_o the_o pope_n victori_fw-la pope_n platina_n in_o victori_fw-la victorinus_n the_o three_o be_v poison_v in_o drink_v that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o chalice_n that_o henry_n the_o seven_o emperor_n be_v murder_v with_o a_o consecrate_a host_n and_o that_o 1154._o that_o math._n paris_n a_o 1154._o henry_n archbishop_n of_o york_n be_v use_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n in_o take_v the_o sacrament_n dare_v one_o who_o know_v all_o these_o story_n say_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o idol_n be_v not_o god_n be_v because_o some_o of_o they_o fall_v out_o of_o their_o place_n have_v bruise_v and_o hurt_v those_o who_o usual_o walk_v about_o they_o word_n be_v the_o expression_n of_o our_o thought_n if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o same_o belief_n and_o the_o same_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n as_o the_o first_o christian_n why_o do_v it_o not_o dare_v to_o urge_v the_o same_o thing_n which_o be_v maintain_v by_o the_o first_o christian_n or_o if_o the_o first_o christian_n have_v the_o same_o faith_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o how_o come_v they_o to_o urge_v argument_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o dare_v not_o maintain_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o know_v how_o great_a a_o prejudice_n this_o argument_n be_v against_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n so_o do_v it_o work_v a_o mighty_a effect_n in_o my_o soul_n and_o because_o i_o think_v it_o very_o hard_a to_o have_v a_o resolution_n to_o it_o i_o propose_v it_o in_o public_a dispute_n at_o paris_n and_o first_o the_o professor_n deny_v that_o ever_o any_o of_o the_o father_n have_v use_v such_o argument_n but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o i_o can_v not_o abide_v to_o take_v a_o lie_v before_o so_o many_o people_n i_o send_v for_o arnobius_n his_o book_n and_o i_o read_v therein_o proof_n enough_o to_o maintain_v the_o proposition_n i_o stand_v for_o then_o the_o professor_n who_o be_v as_o much_o able_a to_o give_v distinction_n to_o no_o purpose_n as_o he_o be_v ignorant_a in_o read_v the_o father_n bring_v distinction_n upon_o distinction_n till_o at_o last_o in_o deny_v or_o distinguish_v proposition_n clear_a than_o the_o sun_n itself_o he_o have_v reduce_v the_o dispute_n to_o some_o philosophical_a question_n to_o avoid_v answer_v my_o argument_n i_o propose_v it_o again_o to_o several_a learned_a man_n i_o look_v for_o some_o answer_n and_o solution_n in_o the_o book_n of_o divine_n and_o i_o find_v nothing_o no_o where_o that_o can_v satisfy_v i_o in_o that_o difficulty_n ii_o second_o proof_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o reason_n wherewith_o the_o same_o father_n be_v wont_a to_o dispute_v against_o the_o heretic_n the_o second_o reason_n that_o persuade_v i_o that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n with_o transubstantiation_n be_v the_o argument_n the_o first_o christian_n use_v to_o prove_v against_o the_o heretic_n of_o their_o age_n that_o christ_n have_v a_o true_a body_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o ghost_n jesus_n christ_n say_v tertullian_n marci_n tertullian_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 40._o cont_n marci_n take_v the_o bread_n and_o divide_v to_o his_o apostle_n he_o make_v his_o body_n of_o it_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n but_o it_o can_v not_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o he_o body_n if_o he_o have_v not_o have_v a_o true_a body_n since_o a_o thing_n in_o the_o air_n such_o as_o a_o ghost_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o any_o figure_n and_o 1._o and_o lib._n 5._o cap._n 1._o irenaeus_n dispute_v against_o the_o heretic_n who_o say_v christ_n have_v not_o take_v the_o human_a nature_n if_o it_o be_v so_o say_v he_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o redeem_a we_o with_o his_o blood_n the_o chalice_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o the_o communication_n of_o his_o blood_n and_o the_o bread_n we_o break_v be_v not_o the_o communication_n of_o his_o body_n for_o the_o blood_n can_v proceed_v but_o from_o vein_n flesh_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o a_o man._n if_o these_o father_n have_v believe_v the_o real_a presence_n with_o transubstantiation_n they_o have_v speak_v thus_o have_v not_o they_o say_v the_o eucharist_n be_v christ_n own_o flesh_n his_o own_o soul_n his_o own_o divinity_n therefore_o christ_n be_v not_o a_o mere_a ghost_n since_o we_o have_v his_o flesh_n in_o the_o sacrament_n have_v not_o this_o argument_n be_v strong_a than_o the_o other_o wherein_o they_o prove_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o true_a body_n because_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n irenaeus_n ought_v to_o have_v suppose_v in_o the_o chalice_n of_o the_o eucharist_n christ_n own_o blood_n to_o be_v and_o not_o as_o he_o do_v that_o the_o chalice_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o communication_n of_o his_o blood_n he_o shall_v have_v say_v the_o bread_n we_o break_v be_v transubstantiate_v into_o christ_n body_n and_o not_o that_o it_o be_v the_o communication_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o a_o word_n he_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v christ_n own_o flesh_n christ_n own_o substance_n and_o though_o those_o argument_n of_o the_o father_n be_v admirable_a and_o most_o cogent_a yet_o they_o will_v have_v betray_v the_o truth_n if_o be_v persuade_v of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n with_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n they_o have_v forget_v to_o speak_v of_o it_o i_o be_o very_o sure_a if_o the_o ancient_a heresy_n shall_v come_v again_o into_o the_o church_n there_o will_v be_v never_o a_o divine_a to_o
be_v attribute_v or_o that_o they_o have_v be_v thereafter_o increase_v adulterate_a and_o fill_v with_o corruption_n but_o let_v it_o be_v what_o it_o can_v these_o liturgy_n though_o corrupt_v be_v nevertheless_o work_v of_o antiquity_n and_o since_o many_o of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n hold_v they_o all_o authentical_a we_o may_v right_o urge_v those_o work_n against_o they_o to_o make_v they_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o in_o the_o time_n those_o liturgy_n be_v write_v the_o manner_n of_o administer_a the_o eucharist_n be_v entire_o different_a from_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o abridgement_n of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o worship_v of_o the_o host_n and_o in_o celebrate_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n which_o be_v a_o strong_a proof_n against_o the_o novelty_n of_o the_o now_o roman_a church_n ii_o the_o beginning_n of_o all_o the_o error_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o without_o far_a insist_v upon_o proof_n which_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v negative_a only_o which_o nevertheless_o be_v of_o great_a weight_n and_o have_v almost_o the_o force_n of_o a_o demonstration_n in_o question_n wherein_o one_o sect_n be_v accuse_v of_o innovation_n it_o be_v very_o easy_a to_o produce_v positive_a proof_n to_o show_v the_o novelty_n of_o those_o error_n since_o we_o know_v the_o time_n when_o they_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o world_n and_o that_o we_o know_v their_o beginning_n and_o their_o author_n 1._o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o abridgement_n of_o the_o cup._n we_o know_v by_o 1025._o by_o consult_v de_fw-fr utraque_fw-la spec_fw-la pag._n 1025._o cassander_n report_n that_o the_o eastern_a church_n have_v always_o give_v the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n to_o every_o one_o of_o the_o faithful_a and_o that_o even_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o custom_n of_o distribute_v to_o every_o body_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n do_v last_v more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n the_o erroneous_a custom_n of_o abridge_n the_o cup_n of_o christ_n blood_n to_o all_o the_o people_n be_v bear_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n in_o the_o 13._o session_n wherein_o the_o council_n after_o have_v acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o communicate_v under_o both_o kind_n establish_v as_o a_o law_n the_o custom_n of_o take_v away_o from_o the_o people_n a_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o declare_v heretic_n those_o who_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o error_n to_o withstand_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o example_n and_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o commandment_n to_o which_o he_o have_v boud_v we_o upon_o ternal_a damnation_n viz._n the_o commandment_n of_o drink_v of_o the_o chalice_n of_o his_o blood_n this_o be_v will_v some_o say_v a_o very_a strange_a doctrine_n that_o a_o council_n notwithstanding_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n christ_n example_n and_o the_o commandment_n he_o have_v enjoin_v unto_o all_o the_o faithful_a shall_v dare_v forbid_v all_o priest_n to_o give_v the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n and_o will_v have_v it_o be_v a_o heresy_n to_o obey_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v conform_v to_o his_o example_n and_o to_o follow_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o saint_n who_o live_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n this_o be_v a_o very_a churlish_a and_o ungentile_a manner_n of_o deal_v but_o what_o reason_n have_v that_o council_n to_o forbid_v to_o administer_v the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n be_v you_o curious_a to_o know_v they_o i_o have_v learn_v they_o of_o chancellor_n specie_fw-la chancellor_n tract_n contr_n haeres_fw-la de_fw-fr cons._n sub_fw-la utraque_fw-la specie_fw-la gerson_n 1._o the_o man_n beard_n which_o grow_v on_o their_o li_n 2._o the_o loathsomeness_n which_o one_o shall_v have_v to_o drink_v after_o other_o 3._o the_o costliness_n and_o difficulty_n of_o get_v wine_n 4._o the_o inconveniency_n of_o frost_n in_o winter_n 5._o the_o importunity_n of_o fly_n in_o summer_n 6._o the_o trouble_n that_o the_o deacon_n shall_v have_v to_o bring_v wine_n to_o the_o faithful_a 7._o the_o danger_n of_o spill_v 8._o and_o the_o people_n unworthiness_n to_o equal_a priest_n in_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n if_o he_o receive_v it_o under_o both_o kind_n these_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o great_a moment_n which_o have_v oblige_v that_o council_n to_o withstand_v so_o direct_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a custom_n of_o all_o the_o primitive_a church_n true_o be_v these_o reason_n sufficient_a to_o abolish_v so_o express_v a_o commandment_n which_o christ_n have_v enjoin_v to_o all_o the_o faithful_a to_o drink_v his_o blood_n be_v there_o some_o new_a inconvenience_n which_o have_v happen_v since_o to_o alter_v the_o form_n in_o which_o christ_n have_v institute_v the_o sacrament_n have_v not_o man_n their_o beard_n in_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n be_v there_o no_o body_n to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n who_o have_v loathsomeness_n to_o drink_v after_o other_o be_v wine_n dear_a now_o in_o france_n italy_n and_o spain_n than_o it_o be_v then_o in_o syria_n graecia_n jerusalem_fw-la and_o constantinople_n do_v not_o wine_n freeze_v before_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n be_v it_o but_o since_o that_o time_n fly_n have_v vex_v the_o people_n in_o summer_n be_v the_o trouble_n of_o the_o deacon_n and_o the_o danger_n of_o spill_v wine_n such_o thing_n as_o christ_n have_v not_o foresee_v and_o be_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n more_o elevate_v in_o dignity_n than_o christ_n himself_o be_v and_o his_o apostle_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v need_n to_o set_v betwixt_o they_o and_o the_o people_n a_o difference_n which_o be_v never_o set_v betwixt_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n betwixt_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o faithful_a 2._o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o worship_v of_o the_o host_n as_o for_o the_o worship_v of_o the_o host_n not_o only_o we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n ever_o worship_v the_o sacrament_n or_o that_o this_o be_v the_o use_n of_o the_o first_o faithful_a not_o only_o we_o do_v not_o find_v in_o all_o these_o liturgy_n whereof_o i_o have_v speak_v any_o footstep_n of_o that_o worship_v but_o furtheremore_n we_o do_v know_v all_o the_o degree_n whereby_o this_o error_n fair_a and_o soft_o slide_v into_o the_o world_n we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v pope_n innocent_a iii_o who_o first_o command_v that_o some_o box_n shall_v be_v keep_v in_o the_o church_n wherein_o the_o consecrate_a host_n shall_v be_v conserve_v that_o it_o be_v peope_n honorius_n iii_o about_o the_o year_n 1220_o who_o renew_v that_o decree_n with_o this_o new_a addition_n that_o upon_o those_o box_n these_o word_n shall_v be_v write_v hìc_fw-la deum_fw-la adora_fw-la here_o adore_v god_n and_o that_o the_o same_o pope_n ordain_v that_o the_o host_n shall_v be_v elevate_v we_o know_v it_o be_v pope_n gregory_n ix_o who_o add_v to_o that_o elevation_n the_o sound_n of_o a_o little_a bell_n about_o the_o year_n 1230._o and_o in_o fine_a we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v innocent_a iu_o who_o ordain_v that_o the_o host_n shall_v be_v worship_v these_o be_v the_o degree_n whereby_o that_o error_n have_v be_v establish_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o if_o you_o will_v know_v what_o engine_n they_o have_v use_v to_o give_v authority_n unto_o that_o worship_a you_o be_v but_o to_o read_v platina_n and_o the_o 3_o the_o ad_fw-la evam_n reclusam_fw-la data_fw-la apud_fw-la vrb_fw-la vet._n 6._o id._n sept._n an._n pontif._n 3_o bull_n of_o pope_n urban_n iv_o direct_v to_o a_o nun_n call_v eve_n and_o you_o shall_v see_v that_o about_o the_o ear_n 1264_o this_o pope_n institute_v the_o feast_n which_o be_v call_v corpus-christi-day_n upon_o the_o revelation_n and_o the_o request_n of_o that_o nun_n to_o who_o he_o send_v the_o book_n of_o the_o office_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v frame_v by_o thomas_n aquinas_n we_o know_v that_o afterward_o pope_n clement_n v._o in_o the_o council_n of_o vienna_n ordain_v that_o this_o festival_n day_n shall_v be_v keep_v by_o all_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o about_o the_o year_n 1360_o they_o begin_v at_o pavia_n to_o make_v procession_n and_o tabernacle_n which_o be_v afterward_o observe_v in_o all_o town_n that_o submit_v to_o the_o pope_n authority_n before_o the_o time_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v corrupt_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o christian_n do_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n with_o devotion_n with_o zeal_n and_o a_o holy_a greediness_n it_o be_v with_o a_o joy_n which_o can_v be_v express_v that_o they_o meet_v in_o the_o church_n to_o participate_v of_o the_o true_a body_n and_o true_a blood_n
of_o christ_n jesus_fw-la there_o be_v before_o the_o table_n of_o the_o communion_n a_o great_a curtain_n like_v to_o that_o veil_n which_o be_v in_o the_o old_a time_n before_o the_o 26.33_o the_o exod._n 26.33_o ark_n of_o the_o testimony_n and_o when_o the_o curtain_n be_v draw_v to_o set_v open_a to_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o people_n the_o holy_a mystery_n the_o faithful_a imagain_v they_o see_v the_o heaven_n open_v as_o ephes_n as_o homil._n 3._o sup_n epist_n ad_fw-la ephes_n st._n chrysostome_n speak_v they_o consider_v the_o table_n of_o communion_n as_o a_o altar_n imbrue_v all_o over_o with_o christ_n blood_n they_o come_v to_o the_o sacred_a table_n with_o a_o holy_a horror_n and_o a_o tremble_a like_a to_o that_o of_o moses_n when_o he_o come_v nigh_o to_o the_o bush_n out_o of_o the_o midst_n whereof_o god_n speak_v with_o he_o they_o be_v all_o penetrate_v throughout_o with_o the_o light_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o they_o breathe_v nothing_o but_o fire_n of_o charity_n which_o consumend_v they_o and_o in_o this_o manner_n they_o come_v near_o our_o lord_n j._n christ_n to_o eat_v his_o own_o body_n and_o to_o drink_v his_o own_o blood_n they_o regard_v the_o minister_n who_o divide_v to_o they_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n as_o a_o seraphin_n who_o be_v to_o put_v upon_o their_o tongue_n a_o coal_n of_o fire_n to_o quicken_v they_o with_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n but_o if_o somebody_o in_o that_o time_n shall_v have_v worship_v the_o sacr_n ament_fw-la in_o stead_n of_o worship_v christ_n who_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o sacrament_n he_o will_v have_v be_v look_v upon_o as_o a_o idolater_n he_o will_v have_v be_v reject_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o deal_v with_o as_o a_o heretic_n or_o else_o they_o will_v have_v teach_v he_o that_o it_o be_v a_o dreadful_a error_n to_o worship_v the_o sacrament_n as_o if_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v transubstantiate_v into_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o of_o all_o the_o saint_n be_v to_o believe_v that_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o holy_a sacr_n ament_fw-la we_o be_v true_o and_o real_o partaker_n of_o the_o true_a body_n and_o of_o the_o true_a blood_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v in_o heaven_n settle_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n his_o father_n where_o we_o worship_v he_o in_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n 3._o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n now_o for_o the_o three_o error_n which_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v but_o fince_n the_o pope_n have_v make_v themselves_o sovereign_n since_o they_o have_v raise_v themselves_o to_o be_v arbitrator_n of_o crown_n since_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o depose_v king_n from_o their_o throne_n and_o usurp_v that_o temporal_a power_n which_o they_o now_o enjoy_v we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v but_o since_o that_o time_n that_o they_o have_v endeavour_v as_o by_o right_a of_o conquest_n to_o oblige_v all_o nation_n to_o speak_v the_o roman_a language_n as_o a_o mark_n of_o their_o bondage_n to_o the_o pope_n follow_v the_o example_n of_o the_o old_a roman_a emperor_n who_o after_o they_o have_v reduce_v several_a province_n and_o nation_n under_o their_o jurisdiction_n constrain_v they_o to_o speak_v the_o roman_a language_n that_o tyranny_n of_o constrain_a the_o people_n to_o celebrate_v the_o holy_a of_o our_o mystery_n in_o a_o tongue_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o evident_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v we_o in_o the_o 14.16_o the_o 1_o cor._n 14.16_o scripture_n that_o almost_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n which_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n their_o belief_n and_o the_o form_n of_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n do_v celebrate_v it_o unto_o this_o day_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n of_o the_o country_n whereof_o they_o be_v inhabitant_n the_o greek_n have_v their_o lyturgy_n in_o their_o own_o tongue_n as_o every_o one_o know_v the_o christian_n of_o moscovia_n who_o receive_v of_o the_o apostle_n st._n andrew_n the_o faith_n of_o christianity_n have_v their_o lyturgy_n in_o the_o 250._o the_o guagn_n de_fw-fr relig._n moscov_n pag._n 250._o slavonian_a tongue_n which_o be_v the_o vulgar_a tongue_n of_o the_o country_n they_o inhabit_v the_o armenian_n convert_v for_o the_o most_o part_n by_o s._n bartholomew_n speak_v their_o 31._o their_o cassander_n lyturg._n cap._n 13._o pag._n 31._o own_o tongue_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n the_o jacobite_n who_o dwell_v in_o syria_n speak_v 194._o speak_v brerewood_n pag._n 194._o syriack_n in_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n the_o abissine_a christian_n celebrate_v the_o divine_a service_n and_o the_o communion_n in_o the_o 28._o the_o chytraeus_n pag._n 28._o tongue_n of_o their_o country_n which_o make_v i_o believe_v that_o all_o christian_a nation_n conform_v themselves_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o that_o they_o have_v well_o perceive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n frobid_v the_o celebration_n of_o these_o holy_a mystery_n which_o consist_v in_o blessing_n and_o thanksgiving_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n to_o which_o the_o unlearned_a can_v not_o answer_v amen_n conclusion_n of_o the_o first_o part_n the_o article_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v be_v prove_v either_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n all_o those_o reflection_n which_o i_o make_v for_o my_o own_o particular_a instruction_n and_o edification_n bring_v a_o great_a light_n into_o my_o soul_n and_o overthrow_v in_o part_n the_o false_a principle_n wherewith_o the_o error_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v ordinary_o intricate_v and_o darken_v first_o i_o begin_v to_o mistrust_v that_o church_n and_o then_o afterward_o to_o draw_v some_o consequence_n against_o the_o error_n thereof_o i_o think_v since_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n very_o natural_a to_o mistrust_v one_o in_o all_o his_o conduct_n after_o we_o have_v once_o surprise_v he_o in_o a_o dault_n that_o after_o have_v discover_v the_o error_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n concern_v the_o question_n of_o the_o eucharist_n i_o may_v reasonable_o mistrust_v it_o in_o all_o the_o other_o article_n of_o faith_n of_o which_o it_o make_v a_o particular_a profession_n and_o so_o i_o see_v nothing_o sure_a nothing_o fast_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o believe_v i_o may_v just_o mistrust_v that_o this_o church_n have_v do_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n purgatory_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o invocation_n of_o saint_n the_o same_o that_o it_o have_v do_v in_o that_o of_o transubstantiation_n reality_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n that_o be_v to_o say_v i_o fear_v they_o be_v article_n which_o have_v be_v frame_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n moreover_o i_o think_v that_o have_v remark_v the_o error_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o chief_a and_o most_o holy_a of_o all_o the_o mystery_n of_o christianity_n i_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o examine_v the_o other_o article_n and_o that_o that_o only_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v i_o suppose_v that_o it_o have_v err_v in_o all_o the_o other_o point_n of_o its_o doctrine_n and_o that_o one_o must_v consequent_o forsake_v its_o communion_n if_o he_o do_v desire_n to_o be_v save_v the_o desire_n of_o my_o salvation_n be_v a_o desire_n which_o grace_n have_v root_v very_o profound_o in_o my_o soul_n but_o the_o thought_n of_o forsake_v the_o communion_n of_o a_o church_n within_o which_o i_o have_v be_v bring_v up_o be_v a_o thought_n very_o contrary_a to_o my_o natural_a inclination_n i_o can_v not_o blind_v myself_o from_o see_v the_o error_n of_o rome_n but_o i_o have_v not_o yet_o strength_n enough_o generous_o to_o forsake_v they_o to_o the_o peril_n of_o whatsoever_o can_v happen_v the_o reason_n which_o make_v i_o understand_v my_o error_n come_v every_o day_n to_o present_v themselves_o to_o my_o mind_n with_o some_o new_a light_n and_o evidence_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n hereupon_o i_o look_v before_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v encompass_v round_o about_o with_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n ground_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n appear_v to_o i_o at_o that_o time_n bare_v of_o all_o those_o fine_a testimony_n but_o at_o last_o the_o same_o pretence_n which_o cause_v i_o to_o defer_v my_o conversion_n when_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n have_v make_v i_o understand_v that_o the_o romish_a faith_n be_v not_o ground_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n
christian_a congregation_n do_v not_o agree_v together_o to_o know_v which_o of_o they_o have_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o the_o true_a religion_n institute_v by_o christ_n that_o be_v the_o point_n of_o my_o difficulty_n in_o that_o part_n of_o europe_n wherein_o i_o find_v myself_o by_o the_o chance_n of_o my_o birth_n see_v two_o congregation_n two_o christian_a church_n the_o roman_a and_o the_o reform_a which_o both_o boast_n to_o have_v that_o true_a faith_n exclude_v the_o other_o now_o how_o to_o resolve_v that_o difference_n and_o to_o know_v which_o of_o they_o have_v truth_n of_o its_o side_n the_o roman_a church_n brag_v itself_o to_o be_v the_o elder_a it_o reckon_v a_o multitude_n of_o people_n and_o nation_n who_o conform_v themselves_o to_o its_o communion_n and_o show_v a_o long_a catalogue_n of_o pope_n who_o have_v be_v settle_v one_o after_o another_o in_o the_o seat_n of_o rome_n but_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v to_o set_v open_a to_o the_o light_a its_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o to_o examine_v whether_o or_o no_o they_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o that_o true_a faith_n which_o have_v be_v teach_v we_o by_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n it_o cry_v out_o fret_n and_o be_v disturb_v it_o can_v abide_v to_o come_v to_o that_o examination_n and_o will_v be_v believe_v upon_o its_o own_o word_n on_o the_o contrary_a the_o reform_a church_n brag_v of_o nothing_o she_o can_v say_v that_o it_o be_v she_o true_o that_o be_v the_o elder_a since_o the_o doctrine_n she_o teach_v if_o conformable_a to_o that_o which_o christ_n himself_o teach_v we_o she_o can_v show_v in_o all_o age_n and_o in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n whole_a nation_n which_o be_v conformable_a to_o the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o she_o have_v learn_v from_o christ_n she_o can_v show_v long_a catalogue_n of_o bishop_n and_o patriarch_n who_o have_v succeed_v one_o another_o in_o the_o chair_n which_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o have_v establish_v which_o be_v with_o she_o in_o communion_n and_o upon_o all_o those_o account_n she_o can_v demand_v as_o well_o as_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v believe_v upon_o she_o own_o word_n without_o come_v to_o the_o examination_n of_o her_o doctrine_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o she_o know_v that_o this_o manner_n of_o deal_n be_v unjust_a and_o that_o she_o be_v sure_a she_o teach_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n she_o desire_v nothing_o so_o much_o as_o to_o be_v examine_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o give_v leave_v to_o all_o the_o world_n to_o compare_v the_o doctrine_n she_o teach_v with_o that_o which_o they_o teach_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n with_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n with_o that_o which_o christ_n himself_o teach_v when_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n now_o which_o of_o these_o two_o church_n act_n more_o sincere_o and_o which_o of_o they_o have_v we_o most_o reason_n to_o suspect_v of_o error_n and_o falsehood_n if_o fomebody_n shall_v come_v to_o a_o payment_n with_o you_o and_o you_o can_v not_o know_v sure_o whether_o his_o money_n be_v good_a or_o false_a coin_n will_v not_o you_o use_v weight_n and_o a_o touchstone_n to_o examine_v the_o money_n and_o if_o the_o man_n shall_v be_v angry_a and_o allege_v to_o you_o that_o the_o money_n which_o he_o pay_v you_o seem_v very_o acnient_a that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n a_o great_a deal_n more_o such_o as_o that_o and_o that_o he_o have_v receive_v it_o successive_o from_o his_o great_a great_a grandfather_n will_v you_o not_o say_v to_o he_o sir_n there_o be_v great_a quantity_n of_o ancient_a money_n which_o be_v false_a for_o all_o that_o if_o this_o money_n be_v not_o good_a all_o the_o money_n in_o the_o world_n which_o be_v alike_o to_o it_o be_v not_o good_a neither_o and_o if_o these_o piece_n be_v false_a you_o may_v give_v they_o your_o child_n success_n sive_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o they_o will_v not_o grow_v better_o for_o all_o that_o but_o if_o notwithstanding_o the_o man_n will_v be_v believe_v upon_o his_o word_n and_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n abide_v you_o shall_v bring_v his_o money_n to_o the_o trial_n will_v not_o you_o take_v occasion_n from_o thence_o to_o think_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o such_o a_o man_n intend_v to_o cheat_v you_o section_n i._o antiquity_n multitude_n and_o succession_n be_v not_o privilege_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n above_o all_o other_o church_n such_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o deal_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v a_o great_a argument_n that_o the_o doctrine_n she_o teach_v be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n since_o it_o can_v abide_v by_o any_o mean_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v examine_v by_o that_o rule_n she_o brag_v that_o she_o have_v on_o her_o side_n antiquity_n the_o great_a number_n and_o succession_n and_o in_o repeat_v often_o those_o fine_a principle_n which_o dazzle_v the_o world_n in_o say_v they_o over_o and_o over_o and_o bold_o in_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v publish_v every_o where_n by_o her_o controversial_a and_o theological_a writer_n she_o have_v make_v the_o world_n almost_o believe_v that_o she_o be_v the_o elder_a of_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o that_o among_o all_o the_o christian_a congregation_n there_o be_v but_o few_o which_o be_v not_o submit_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o fine_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o only_a true_a successor_n of_o st._n peter_n these_o be_v the_o three_o false_a principle_n upon_o which_o the_o roman_a church_n ground_n itself_o but_o which_o have_v no_o other_o foundation_n than_o the_o boldness_n wherewith_o those_o of_o that_o church_n have_v use_v to_o publish_v they_o §_o 1._o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o the_o elder_a of_o all_o the_o church_n we_o learn_v of_o the_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a author_n origine_fw-la eusebius_n hierome_n isidore_n and_o other_o that_o the_o apostle_n after_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o a_o order_n to_o go_v to_o publish_v the_o gospel_n in_o all_o the_o world_n be_v scatter_v abroad_o as_o so_o many_o flood_n full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o all_o the_o nation_n st._n peter_n preach_v in_o judea_n galatia_n cappadocia_fw-la pontus_fw-la bythinia_n and_o rome_n st._n james_n the_o son_n of_o zebedee_n in_o judea_n and_o spain_n st._n john_n in_o judea_n and_o asia_n the_o less_o st._n andrew_n in_o scythia_n europea_n in_o eprius_n thracia_n and_o achaia_n st._n james_n the_o brother_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o jerusalem_n st._n philip_n in_o scythia_n and_o phrygia_n st._n bartholomew_n in_o the_o indies_n and_o armenia_n the_o great_a st._n matthew_n in_o ethyopia_n st._n thomas_n preach_v to_o the_o parthian_n mede_n persian_n brahmin_n hyrcanian_n bactrian_n and_o indian_n st._n simon_n in_o mesopotamia_n and_o persia_n st._n judas_n in_o egypt_n and_o persia_n st._n mathias_n in_o the_o high_a ethyopia_n st._n paul_n and_o barnabas_n in_o many_o country_n of_o europe_n and_o asia_n now_o i_o will_v very_o fain_o know_v upon_o what_o ground_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v be_v account_v the_o elder_a of_o all_o those_o church_n which_o have_v be_v erect_v by_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n if_o one_o of_o they_o have_v the_o right_a to_o be_v account_v and_o call_v the_o elder_a of_o the_o sister_n it_o seem_v in_o all_o reason_n that_o it_o must_v be_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o it_o be_v in_o jerusalem_n that_o christ_n himself_o preach_v the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o sermon_n there_o he_o exercise_v his_o office_n of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n it_o be_v in_o that_o city_n he_o be_v sacrifice_v for_o our_o sin_n it_o be_v there_o the_o apostle_n first_o declare_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o 47._o in_o chap._n 24._o v._n 47._o st._n luke_n it_o be_v of_o that_o church_n st._n james_n be_v create_v the_o first_o bishop_n in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v call_v by_o theodoret_n 9_o theodoret_n hist_o ecclesiast_fw-la lib._n 5._o cap._n 9_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d etc._n etc._n it_o be_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v as_o the_o first_o of_o all_o church_n according_a to_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o the_o father_n who_o be_v present_a at_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n as_o baronius_n himself_o testify_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 382._o if_o the_o right_a of_o antiquity_n be_v to_o be_v give_v only_o to_o a_o church_n institute_v by_o st._n peter_n the_o church_n of_o antioch_n in_o syria_n be_v to_o have_v in_o that_o the_o privilege_n above_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o
it_o be_v the_o most_o ancient_a of_o all_o the_o church_n which_o have_v be_v ever_o govern_v by_o st._n peter_n in_o antioch_n st._n peter_n execute_v the_o function_n of_o bishop_n even_o according_a to_o baronius_n seven_o year_n before_o he_o have_v ever_o be_v at_o rome_n it_o be_v in_o antioch_n that_o the_o faithful_a be_v first_o call_v christian_n as_o it_o be_v report_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o it_o be_v the_o church_n of_o antioch_n which_o be_v call_v by_o st._n chrysosthome_n the_o chief_a and_o capital_a of_o the_o whole_a world_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o fine_a if_o the_o mother_n be_v more_o ancient_a than_o the_o daughter_n if_o the_o spring_n be_v before_o the_o brook_n the_o greek_a church_n be_v more_o ancient_a than_o the_o roman_a the_o greek_a church_n be_v erect_v by_o st._n paul_n and_o s._n andrew_n and_o it_o be_v from_o that_o church_n as_o from_o a_o holy_a spring_n the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v scatter_v abroad_o afterward_o through_o the_o kingdom_n and_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n it_o be_v from_o the_o greek_a church_n the_o roman_a receive_v the_o new_a testament_n the_o apostle_n creed_n that_o of_o nice_n and_o st._n athanasius_n it_o be_v of_o the_o greek_a church_n that_o the_o roman_a learn_v the_o very_a name_n of_o baptism_n of_o eucharist_n of_o bishop_n of_o priest_n of_o deacon_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o bitonto_n 18._o bitonto_n lib._n the_o act_n conc_fw-fr trident._n pag._n 18._o acknowledge_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n that_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o the_o roman_a and_o that_o it_o be_v from_o that_o rome_n have_v receive_v all_o it_o possess_v ea_fw-la igitur_fw-la graecia_n mater_fw-la nostra_fw-la cvi_fw-la id_fw-la totum_fw-la debet_fw-la quod_fw-la habet_fw-la latina_n ecclesia_fw-la you_o may_v judge_v now_o upon_o what_o be_v ground_v those_o fine_a title_n of_o eldership_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n of_o which_o they_o make_v so_o much_o noise_n and_o so_o much_o boast_v §._o 2._o that_o the_o multitude_n be_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n side_n the_o vanity_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v puff_v up_o withal_o to_o have_v multitude_n of_o its_o side_n be_v not_o better_o ground_v than_o the_o antiquity_n of_o it_o true_o if_o you_o shall_v dwell_v in_o the_o middle_n of_o paris_n or_o of_o rome_n and_o without_o take_v any_o notice_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v act_v in_o the_o world_n shall_v take_v the_o word_n of_o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o will_v make_v you_o believe_v that_o all_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n belong_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o there_o be_v but_o a_o very_a small_a number_n of_o those_o who_o will_v not_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n but_o if_o you_o will_v lift_v up_o your_o eye_n and_o look_v upon_o that_o which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o world_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o of_o all_o the_o three_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n which_o have_v be_v know_v to_o our_o father_n asia_n be_v all_o full_a of_o christian_n who_o have_v receive_v their_o faith_n from_o the_o very_a apostle_n and_o who_o never_o have_v receive_v nor_o receive_v yet_o the_o domination_n of_o the_o pope_n you_o may_v find_v there_o the_o christian_n of_o palestine_n submit_v to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o syrian_n and_o the_o melchites_n under_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n the_o armenian_n and_o georgian_n subject_v to_o their_o own_o patriarch_n and_o metropolitan_o who_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o dominion_n of_o the_o pope_n you_o may_v see_v there_o the_o mingrelian_o the_o circassian_n the_o christian_n of_o the_o less_o asia_n submit_v to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n the_o jacobite_n the_o christian_n of_o st._n thomas_n submit_v to_o their_o peculiar_a patriarch_n and_o not_o to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n if_o you_o set_v your_o eye_n on_o africa_n and_o on_o those_o in_o that_o part_n of_o the_o world_n who_o have_v receive_v the_o gospel_n you_o may_v find_v there_o the_o egyptian_n and_o the_o cophte_n to_o be_v subject_v to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n the_o ethiopian_n or_o abissins_n have_v their_o own_o patriarch_n who_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v yet_o unto_o this_o day_n the_o jurisdiction_n of_o rome_n what_o relation_n soever_o the_o pope_n missionary_n have_v make_v of_o it_o as_o for_o that_o province_n whereof_o the_o jesuit_n make_v so_o much_o noise_n which_o they_o call_v the_o kingdom_n of_o congo_n the_o governor_n whereof_o have_v submit_v to_o the_o pope_n dominion_n it_o be_v very_o easy_a to_o know_v that_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o mission_n of_o jesuit_n such_o as_o those_o which_o they_o have_v erect_v in_o goa_n in_o jappan_n even_o in_o england_n in_o the_o very_a chief_a town_n of_o this_o kingdom_n to_o root_v therein_o in_o spite_n of_o all_o the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o all_o magistracy_n in_o europe_n the_o greek_n be_v submit_v to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n the_o moscovite_n have_v a_o patriarch_n at_o moskow_n who_o rely_v not_o on_o the_o pope_n the_o christian_a protestant_n and_o reform_a in_o england_n in_o danemark_n in_o swedeland_n in_o holland_n in_o switzerland_n in_o germany_n and_o in_o hungaria_n be_v subject_v to_o their_o bishop_n and_o metropolitan_o who_o be_v not_o subject_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o every_o body_n know_v that_o in_o bohemia_n in_o poland_n even_o in_o france_n even_o in_o some_o country_n of_o italy_n all_o be_v full_a of_o reform_a church_n which_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o pope_n so_o that_o all_o that_o great_a huge_a multitue_v whereof_o the_o roman_a church_n boast_v so_o much_o be_v spain_n most_o part_n of_o poland_n france_n and_o it_o aly_a some_o canton_n of_o switzerland_n part_n of_o the_o low-countries_n and_o of_o germany_n this_o be_v that_o great_a multitude_n of_o people_n partur_fw-la montes_fw-la etc._n etc._n what_o be_v that_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o lest_o some_o body_n shall_v think_v that_o those_o church_n which_o be_v not_o submit_v to_o the_o pope_n be_v some_o small_a church_n those_o who_o will_v take_v the_o pain_n but_o to_o read_v the_o historian_n shall_v find_v that_o the_o only_a patriarchat_n of_o constantinople_n have_v contain_v 80_o bishopric_n and_o 40_o archbishopric_n the_o church_n of_o antioch_n 150_o both_o bishopric_n and_o archbishopric_n that_o of_o jerusalem_n more_o that_o 76_o and_o that_o there_o have_v be_v only_o in_o africa_n 420_o both_o bispoprick_n and_o archbishopric_n according_a to_o myraeus_n relation_n 94._o a_o pag._n 94._o which_o have_v never_o follow_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n from_o thence_o you_o may_v judge_v of_o the_o rest_n §._o 3._o other_o church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o roman_a have_v their_o succession_n from_o the_o very_a apostle_n as_o for_o the_o matter_n of_o succession_n if_o you_o harken_v to_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n you_o will_v think_v that_o only_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o bishop_n have_v succeed_v one_o another_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o christendom_n those_o gentleman_n will_v make_v all_o the_o world_n believe_v that_o the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o of_o their_o communion_n have_v neither_o vocation_n nor_o title_n nor_o ordination_n and_o consequent_o no_o right_a in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a function_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o if_o you_o will_v but_o open_v your_o eye_n and_o read_v nicephorus_n cedrenus_n and_o other_o historian_n you_o shall_v find_v in_o the_o church_n which_o have_v never_o submit_v to_o the_o pope_n which_o have_v ever_o keep_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n several_a catalogue_n of_o bishop_n and_o patriarch_n who_o have_v succeed_v one_o another_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n in_o jerusalem_n jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o holy_a one_o begin_v the_o function_n of_o a_o everlasting_a bishop_n which_o he_o will_v continue_v to_o exercise_v during_o all_o eternity_n st._n james_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n afterward_o next_o simon_n cleophas_n than_o justus_n the_o jew_n etc._n etc._n and_o so_o successive_o bishop_n after_o bishop_n patriarch_n after_o patriarch_n unto_o germanus_n and_o theophanes_n who_o in_o our_o day_n have_v rule_v that_o church_n be_v the_o patriarch_n thereof_o in_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n st._n peter_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n who_o succeed_v evodius_n than_o ignatius_n than_o hero_n than_o cornelius_n and_o other_o successive_o who_o have_v so_o well_o conserve_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n with_o the_o right_a succession_n of_o st._n peter_n that_o he_o of_o those_o bishop_n who_o live_v about_o the_o
year_n 1237_o agree_v together_o with_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o excommunicate_v the_o pope_n gregory_n the_o 9_o and_o pronounce_v anathema_n against_o his_o error_n in_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n the_o patriarch_n gelasius_n who_o rule_v that_o church_n in_o the_o year_n 1636_o succeed_v cyrillus_n cyrillus_n succeed_v meletius_n meletius_n joachim_n and_o so_o from_o bishop_n to_o bishop_n they_o succeed_v the_o evangelist_n st._n mark_n who_o be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n in_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n the_o apostle_n st._n andrew_n who_o be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o it_o as_o relate_v nicephorus_n have_v for_o his_o successor_n stachys_n stachys_n have_v onesimus_n onesimus_n polycarp_n and_o so_o successive_o 177_o bishop_n the_o most_o part_n great_a personage_n and_o learned_a man_n unto_o cyrillus_n and_o methodius_n who_o rule_v that_o church_n in_o our_o day_n and_o parthenius_n who_o rule_v it_o unto_o this_o very_a day_n it_o be_v to_o one_o of_o those_o patriarch_n that_o the_o minister_n who_o preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o germany_n send_v their_o confession_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o year_n 1576_o for_o a_o token_n of_o uniformity_n of_o doctrine_n they_o have_v with_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n section_n ii_o that_o neither_o antiquity_n nor_o multitude_n nor_o succession_n be_v infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o consequent_o that_o one_o church_n may_v have_v they_o all_o and_z with_o they_o all_o be_v a_o heretical_a church_n it_o be_v very_o easy_a to_o know_v by_o all_o that_o which_o i_o have_v rehearse_v before_o that_o if_o we_o must_v judge_v of_o the_o truth_n and_o of_o the_o right_n of_o a_o church_n by_o its_o antiquity_n or_o by_o the_o multitude_n of_o those_o who_o profess_v the_o same_o belief_n or_o by_o the_o succession_n of_o its_o bishop_n it_o will_v not_o be_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n shut_v out_o all_o other_o since_o you_o may_v find_v some_o church_n more_o ancient_a than_o the_o roman_a church_n some_o church_n more_o large_a and_o more_o numerous_a and_o who_o succession_n be_v as_o sure_a at_o least_o and_o without_o comparison_n a_o great_a deal_n less_o interrupt_v and_o less_o disturb_v than_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v by_o schism_n of_o i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o year_n by_o the_o heresy_n of_o its_o bishop_n and_o the_o monstrous_a life_n of_o a_o great_a many_o pope_n but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o truth_n of_o a_o religion_n do_v not_o depend_v upon_o a_o question_n of_o chronology_n geography_n or_o history_n i_o will_v show_v that_o neither_o the_o antiquity_n of_o a_o church_n nor_o the_o multitude_n of_o those_o who_o stand_v of_o its_o side_n nor_o the_o succession_n of_o its_o bishop_n be_v infallible_a mark_n which_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o such_o a_o church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n since_o it_o may_v be_v very_o possible_a that_o such_o a_o church_n may_v have_v all_o those_o mark_n and_o for_o all_o that_o be_v a_o heretical_a church_n §._o 1._o antiquity_n be_v not_o a_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n it_o be_v a_o rule_n receive_v by_o all_o lawyer_n that_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v worth_a nothing_o in_o the_o beginning_n can_v never_o grow_v better_o in_o time_n juris_fw-la time_n l._n quae_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la ff_n de_fw-fr reg_fw-la juris_fw-la quae_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la non_fw-la valuerunt_fw-la tractu_fw-la temporis_fw-la convalescere_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la and_o tertullian_n veland_n tertullian_n de_fw-fr virg_n veland_n hold_v for_o a_o principle_n that_o there_o be_v no_o prescription_n against_o truth_n veritati_fw-la nemo_fw-la praescribere_fw-la potest_fw-la if_o you_o be_v a_o possessor_n of_o a_o house_n of_o a_o field_n of_o land_n and_o you_o have_v enjoy_v it_o peaceable_a during_o a_o hundred_o year_n though_o you_o shall_v have_v lose_v all_o your_o evidence_n or_o suppose_v you_o have_v never_o any_o the_o prescription_n of_o a_o hundred_o year_n will_v establish_v you_o rightful_a possessor_n of_o that_o field_n land_n or_o house_n but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o in_o regard_n of_o error_n and_o truth_n if_o you_o have_v be_v in_o a_o error_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n all_o that_o long_a prescription_n of_o year_n will_v not_o give_v you_o a_o right_a to_o maintain_v such_o a_o error_n because_o error_n can_v be_v strengthen_v by_o prescription_n and_o a_o thing_n which_o be_v false_a from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n can_v never_o become_v true_a by_o continuance_n though_o it_o shall_v last_v as_o long_o as_o eternity_n itself_o it_o will_v be_v always_o new_a in_o respect_n of_o truth_n on_o the_o contrary_a the_o thing_n which_o be_v true_a bring_v always_o with_o themselves_o the_o character_n of_o a_o right_a antiquity_n according_a to_o that_o principle_n of_o the_o same_o tertullian_n that_o truth_n be_v altogether_o ancient_a and_o everlasting_a veritas_fw-la sempiterna_fw-la &_o antique_a res_fw-la est_fw-la and_o be_v it_o from_o that_o principle_n that_o after_o he_o have_v suppose_v that_o there_o be_v several_a thing_n which_o seem_v new_a which_o nevertheless_o be_v very_a ancient_n he_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o novelty_n as_o truth_n that_o confute_v thorough_o all_o heresy_n haereses_fw-la non_fw-la tam_fw-la novitas_fw-la quà m_fw-la veritas_fw-la revincit_fw-la so_o that_o follow_v this_o principle_n to_o prove_v that_o prayer_n direct_v to_o saint_n that_o the_o worship_v of_o image_n that_o the_o belief_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v so_o many_o error_n it_o will_v go_v a_o great_a way_n to_o show_v their_o novelty_n that_o they_o be_v article_n of_o faith_n of_o a_o new_a impression_n but_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o bare_o that_o they_o be_v new_a wemu_v moreover_o show_v that_o those_o article_n be_v contrary_a to_o truth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o word_n of_o god_n let_v a_o matter_n of_o belief_n seem_v to_o you_o as_o much_o new_a as_o can_v be_v if_o the_o article_n it_o contain_v be_v true_a if_o they_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o that_o doctrine_n which_o we_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o very_a apostle_n it_o be_v a_o ancient_a belief_n therefore_o do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n they_o teach_v in_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v a_o new_a doctrine_n you_o be_v to_o examine_v first_o if_o it_o be_v true_a if_o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o if_o you_o find_v it_o such_o you_o be_v to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o ancient_a doctrine_n but_o if_o so_o be_v that_o in_o one_o of_o those_o church_n which_o derive_v their_o original_a from_o the_o apostle_n they_o shall_v teach_v a_o doctrine_n which_o be_v not_o conformable_a to_o the_o gospel_n the_o privilege_n of_o antiquity_n will_v not_o excuse_v they_o from_o error_n they_o will_v be_v ancient_a inveterate_a disease_n who_o the_o privilege_n of_o be_v old_a will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o heal_v be_v there_o in_o all_o the_o world_n a_o religion_n more_o ancient_a than_o that_o of_o the_o idolater_n yet_o dare_v any_o say_v that_o the_o privilege_n it_o have_v of_o be_v old_a give_v it_o that_o of_o be_v true_a and_o infallible_a and_o do_v you_o think_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n who_o dispute_v against_o the_o heathen_n will_v have_v urge_v against_o they_o that_o among_o all_o religion_n and_o church_n that_o be_v always_o the_o most_o true_a which_o be_v the_o most_o ancient_a it_o be_v on_o the_o contrary_n what_o the_o heathen_n object_v to_o they_o against_o the_o gospel_n as_o recognit_fw-la as_o lib._n 4._o recognit_fw-la clement_n alexandrinus_n relate_v what_o then_o say_v those_o blind_a man_n shall_v we_o forsake_v our_o idol_n the_o religion_n which_o have_v be_v give_v we_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n by_o our_o great_a great_a grandfather_n and_o it_o be_v to_o that_o argument_n of_o antiquity_n the_o father_n use_v to_o answer_v that_o antiquity_n signify_v nothing_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n that_o the_o custom_n of_o worship_v idol_n be_v a_o error_n the_o antiquity_n they_o boast_v of_o be_v a_o antiquity_n of_o error_n according_a to_o that_o of_o pomp._n of_o epist_n 74._o ad_fw-la pomp._n st._n cyprian_a consuetudo_fw-la sine_fw-la veritate_fw-la vetustas_fw-la erroris_fw-la est_fw-la in_o fine_a say_fw-la st._n clemens_n if_o your_o father_n have_v be_v a_o thief_n a_o debauch_a and_o a_o dissolute_a shall_v you_o be_v oblige_v to_o be_v a_o thief_n a_o debauch_a and_o a_o dissolute_a becave_a your_o father_n be_v so_o be_v there_o any_o crime_n in_o the_o world_n which_o will_v not_o be_v commit_v without_o punishment_n if_o antiquity_n can_v privilege_v wickedness_n and_o free_a it_o from_o punishment_n the_o prophet_n know_v not_o this_o fine_a doctrine_n whereupon_o the_o pope_n pretend_v to_o
ground_v their_o religion_n for_o when_o they_o will_v have_v excite_v the_o jew_n to_o forsake_v their_o error_n and_o to_o give_v over_o their_o sin_n they_o say_v to_o they_o that_o a_o great_a while_n ago_o they_o have_v entertain_v the_o word_n of_o god_n contumelious_o i_o speak_v unto_o thou_o in_o thy_o prosperity_n 22.21_o prosperity_n jerem._n 22.21_o say_v the_o lord_n but_o thou_o say_v i_o will_v not_o hear_v this_o have_v be_v thy_o manner_n from_o thy_o youth_n that_o thou_o obey_v not_o my_o voice_n 32._o voice_n jerem._n 32.30_o 31_o 32._o the_o child_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o child_n of_o judah_n have_v only_o do_v evil_a before_o i_o from_o their_o youth_n for_o this_o city_n have_v be_v to_o i_o as_o a_o provocation_n of_o my_o anger_n and_o of_o my_o fury_n even_o unto_o this_o day_n that_o i_o shall_v remove_v it_o from_o before_o my_o face_n because_o of_o all_o the_o evil_a of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n and_o of_o the_o child_n of_o judah_n which_o they_o have_v do_v to_o provoke_v i_o to_o anger_n they_o their_o king_n their_o prince_n their_o priest_n and_o their_o prophet_n and_o the_o man_n of_o judah_n and_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n etc._n etc._n whereby_o it_o be_v very_o easy_a to_o see_v that_o the_o prophet_n believe_v not_o that_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n have_v any_o right_a to_o deal_v wrongful_o with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o they_o have_v do_v so_o during_o i_o do_v not_o know_v how_o many_o age_n neither_o that_o the_o king_n the_o prince_n the_o priest_n the_o prophet_n and_o the_o people_n can_v pretend_v to_o stay_v still_o in_o their_o blindness_n because_o in_o all_o age_n before_o there_o have_v be_v find_v many_o of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o priest_n the_o prophet_n and_o the_o people_n who_o have_v go_v astray_o from_o the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o prostitute_v themselves_o to_o error_n in_o fine_a jesus_fw-la christ_n himself_o know_v not_o that_o fine_a maxim_n of_o rome_n that_o antiquity_n be_v a_o true_a mark_n of_o infallibility_n for_o when_o the_o scribe_n and_o the_o pharisee_n say_v 8._o say_v joh._n 8._o that_o they_o be_v child_n of_o abraham_n he_o answer_v they_o that_o their_o genealogy_n be_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o ancient_a since_o they_o be_v child_n of_o the_o devil_n himself_o but_o he_o think_v not_o all_o that_o fair_a antiquity_n can_v render_v they_o infallible_a can_v give_v they_o right_a to_o reject_v his_o holy_a word_n and_o the_o truth_n he_o come_v to_o preach_v to_o they_o §._o 2._o multitude_n be_v not_o a_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n if_o the_o multitude_n be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n we_o must_v need_v say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o true_a church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o enoch_n in_o the_o time_n of_o noah_n in_o the_o time_n of_o abraham_n that_o there_o be_v no_o true_a church_n neither_o whilst_o christ_n jesus_n live_v upon_o the_o earth_n nor_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n nor_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o arian_n if_o the_o account_n we_o have_v receive_v of_o their_o number_n be_v true_a when_o the_o antichrist_n shall_v appear_v in_o the_o world_n the_o church_n and_o the_o true_a worship_v of_o god_n shall_v be_v almost_o destroy_v or_o what_o will_v be_v yet_o more_o horrible_a to_o imagine_v we_o must_v say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v the_o true_a church_n that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o arian_n those_o who_o deny_v christ_n our_o lord_n divinity_n be_v the_o true_a church_n that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o martyr_n the_o heathen_n have_v the_o true_a manner_n of_o worship_v god_n that_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n but_o that_o it_o be_v those_o who_o crucify_a he_o who_o have_v reason_n on_o their_o side_n and_o who_o do_v not_o see_v that_o all_o these_o proposition_n be_v so_o many_o blasphemy_n which_o yet_o be_v good_a consequence_n from_o this_o principle_n urge_v by_o the_o romanist_n but_o be_v horrible_a impiety_n and_o falsehood_n how_o far_o be_v these_o proposition_n from_o the_o thought_n of_o the_o father_n and_o from_o truth_n st._n augustin_n 128._o augustin_n in_o psal_n 128._o faith_n that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v for_o a_o while_n enclose_v in_o the_o single_a person_n of_o abel_n a_o while_n in_o the_o single_a person_n of_o enoch_n a_o while_n it_o do_v consist_v all_o in_o the_o family_n of_o noah_n and_o since_o in_o that_o of_o abraham_n i_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a to_o prove_v here_o among_o reasonable_a people_n that_o it_o be_v among_o that_o people_n of_o god_n before_o christ_n his_o come_n and_o among_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o the_o true_a religion_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v after_o not_o among_o the_o idolater_n and_o the_o heathen_n and_o you_o will_v look_v upon_o i_o as_o a_o man_n who_o think_v all_o the_o christian_n very_o little_a zealous_a for_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n if_o speak_v to_o those_o who_o profess_v to_o follow_v he_o i_o will_v engage_v myself_o to_o prove_v what_o all_o the_o world_n ought_v to_o suppose_v as_o a_o principle_n not_o to_o be_v contest_v that_o while_o christ_n live_v upon_o the_o earth_n with_o his_o apostle_n it_o be_v in_o that_o holy_a college_n of_o christ_n the_o true_a church_n be_v to_o be_v find_v not_o in_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v all_o compact_a of_o man_n who_o gasp_v but_o for_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o righteous_a who_o seek_v but_o to_o oppress_v the_o truth_n as_o for_o the_o time_n of_o the_o arian_n it_o be_v true_a as_o theodoret_n witness_n 16._o witness_n lib._n 2._o hist_o ecclesiast_fw-la cap._n 16._o that_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n speak_v of_o athanasius_n as_o of_o a_o naughty_a fellow_n who_o all_o the_o world_n look_v upon_o with_o detestation_n because_o he_o hold_v christ_n divinity_n who_o be_v thou_o say_v that_o emperor_n to_o liberius_n what_o part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v thou_o to_o come_v all_o alone_a to_o trouble_v the_o quiet_a of_o all_o the_o earth_n it_o be_v true_a as_o hilary_n synod_n hilary_n in_o lib._n the_o synod_n witness_n that_o in_o all_o the_o ten_o province_n of_o asia_n there_o be_v but_o the_o bishop_n eleusius_n and_o a_o very_a small_a number_n of_o people_n with_o he_o who_o persist_v in_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n it_o be_v true_a as_o st._n hierome_n jerosolim_n hierome_n contra_fw-la error_n joan._n jerosolim_n witness_n that_o in_o all_o the_o east_n there_o be_v but_o athanasius_n and_o paulinus_n who_o follow_v not_o the_o error_n of_o arius_n nevertheless_o the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o destroy_v it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o arian_n though_o they_o be_v the_o multitude_n it_o be_v in_o the_o single_a bishop_n eleusius_n it_o be_v in_o athanasius_n it_o be_v in_o paulinus_n because_o as_o liberius_n answer_v to_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n the_o word_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o lessen_v by_o the_o small_a number_n of_o those_o who_o profess_v that_o holy_a word_n neither_o by_o their_o loneliness_n non_fw-la diminuitur_fw-la solitudine_fw-la mea_fw-la verbum_fw-la fidei_fw-la and_o according_a to_o the_o witness_n of_o tertullian_n pudicitia_fw-la tertullian_n de_fw-fr pudicitia_fw-la it_o be_v not_o the_o great_a number_n of_o bishop_n that_o make_v the_o church_n the_o church_n may_v consist_v in_o one_o or_o two_o say_v 10._o say_v de_fw-fr poenit_fw-la cap._n 10._o the_o same_o and_o gregory_n of_o nazianze_n where_o be_v those_o say_v he_o arian_n he_o orat._n count_v arian_n who_o describe_v the_o church_n by_o the_o multitude_n they_o have_v the_o people_n for_o they_o and_o we_o have_v the_o faith_n they_o have_v abundance_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n but_o we_o have_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n whereby_o you_o may_v see_v that_o in_o that_o time_n the_o true_a church_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o the_o multitude_n neither_o shall_v it_o be_v in_o the_o multitude_n that_o the_o true_a church_n shall_v be_v find_v in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v reduce_v to_o a_o very_a little_a number_n according_a to_o the_o testimony_n of_o christ_n 18.8_o christ_n luke_n 18.8_o when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v shall_v he_o find_v faith_n on_o the_o earth_n st._n hierome_n 2._o hierome_n in_o sophron._n 2._o say_v that_o in_o that_o time_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v reduce_v to_o a_o wilderness_n shall_v be_v deiver_v to_o the_o wild_a beast_n and_o shall_v suffer_v all_o the_o evil_n whereof_o the_o prophet_n give_v a_o description_n and_o st._n chrysostome_n 49._o chrysostome_n in_o mathaeum_n homil_n 49._o say_v that_o when_o the_o ungodly_a heresy_n which_o be_v the_o army_n of_o the_o antichrist_n will_v come_v to_o lay_v
the_o apostle_n to_o be_v his_o protector_n to_o present_v he_o to_o the_o disciple_n and_o declare_v unto_o they_o after_o how_o marvellous_a a_o manner_n verse_n 27_o god_n have_v be_v please_v to_o accomplish_v his_o conversion_n this_o be_v the_o condition_n wherein_o st._n paul_n be_v reduce_v after_o his_o conversion_n and_o it_o be_v also_o my_o lord_n the_o very_a same_o condition_n in_o which_o a_o man_n new_o convert_v be_v reduce_v now_o in_o our_o age._n on_o the_o one_o side_n those_o who_o party_n he_o do_v forsake_v become_v his_o most_o bitter_a and_o most_o irreconcilable_a enemy_n they_o threaten_v he_o with_o nothing_o less_o than_o his_o entire_a destruction_n and_o ruin_n and_o be_v not_o their_o vow_n and_o pernicious_a design_n restrain_v by_o the_o severity_n of_o law_n we_o shall_v see_v present_o the_o tragical_a consequence_n of_o their_o indiscreet_a and_o passionate_a zeal_n on_o the_o other_o side_n a_o great_a number_n of_o those_o who_o do_v profess_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v not_o trust_v he_o they_o avoid_v he_o they_o be_v afraid_a of_o he_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n for_o which_o the_o disciple_n be_v afraid_a of_o paul_n they_o be_v afraid_a lest_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v true_o and_o thorough_o convert_v they_o be_v afraid_a lest_o his_o conversion_n shall_v be_v interress_v and_o imperfect_a or_o at_o least_o they_o be_v afraid_a that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v everlasting_a and_o least_o after_o have_v stay_v some_o while_n among_o they_o he_o shall_v return_v to_o his_o error_n and_o become_v once_o more_o the_o persecutor_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o the_o truth_n in_o this_o condition_n what_o will_v become_v a_o man_n new_o convert_v for_o those_o who_o error_n he_o have_v forsake_v and_o who_o do_v persecute_v he_o without_o mercy_n or_o charity_n he_o do_v direct_v his_o prayer_n to_o the_o everlasting_a god_n for_o their_o conversion_n in_o the_o very_a time_n when_o he_o be_v the_o most_o unmerciful_o persecute_v by_o they_o he_o lift_v up_o his_o hand_n to_o heaven_n continual_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o sin_n which_o he_o have_v commit_v be_v the_o only_a cause_n which_o draw_v upon_o his_o head_n all_o these_o persecution_n but_o for_o those_o with_o who_o he_o do_v profess_v the_o same_o faith_n he_o have_v need_n as_o well_o as_o st._n paul_n of_o a_o powerful_a protector_n to_o be_v his_o advocate_n to_o speak_v in_o his_o favour_n and_o make_v know_v to_o all_o the_o people_n that_o his_o conversion_n be_v not_o a_o effect_n of_o interest_n of_o inconstancy_n or_o of_o necessity_n but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o a_o effect_n of_o his_o mercy_n though_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n it_o be_v almost_o three_o year_n since_o i_o profess_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n yet_o i_o may_v for_o several_a reason_n be_v account_v in_o the_o number_n of_o those_o who_o be_v new_o convert_v and_o in_o that_o condition_n i_o find_v myself_o reduce_v to_o the_o same_o fortune_n to_o fall_v into_o the_o hatred_n and_o detestation_n of_o those_o who_o error_n i_o have_v forsake_v and_o to_o find_v in_o a_o great_a many_o protestant_n coldness_n and_o repugnancy_n when_o they_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o have_v former_o profess_v error_n and_o persecute_v those_o who_o embrace_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n i_o be_o not_o so_o ignorant_a how_o far_o the_o zeal_n and_o the_o passion_n of_o man_n reach_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n as_o not_o to_o excuse_v my_o enemy_n i_o forgive_v they_o with_o all_o my_o heart_n and_o i_o pray_v god_n that_o he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o enlighten_v they_o and_o give_v they_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o truth_n i_o be_o not_o so_o unjust_a neither_o as_o to_o condemn_v the_o prudence_n of_o the_o protestant_n i_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o have_v reason_n to_o mistrust_v i_o since_o that_o other_o have_v deceive_v they_o and_o as_o i_o have_v not_o the_o vanity_n to_o think_v myself_o more_o perfect_a than_o st._n paul_n so_o do_v not_o i_o think_v they_o more_o guilty_a than_o all_o the_o disciple_n and_o all_o the_o saint_n who_o dwell_v at_o jerusalem_n who_o mistrust_v this_o apostle_n and_o be_v afraid_a lest_o his_o conversion_n shall_v not_o be_v sincere_a it_o be_v in_o this_o condition_n that_o i_o acknowledge_v that_o i_o have_v need_n of_o a_o powerful_a protection_n and_o it_o be_v to_o crave_v you_o my_o lord_n that_o i_o come_v with_o this_o humble_a dedication_n the_o disciple_n be_v satisfy_v when_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n present_v they_o paul_n and_o tell_v they_o the_o wonder_n which_o grace_n do_v work_v in_o his_o conversion_n have_v not_o i_o all_o the_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n to_o think_v that_o all_o those_o who_o do_v profess_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n will_v be_v satisfy_v also_o and_o that_o they_o will_v consider_v i_o as_o a_o true_a son_n of_o the_o church_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o will_v hear_v that_o the_o motive_n of_o my_o conversion_n appear_v in_o public_a under_o your_o lordship_n protection_n he_o who_o present_v st._n paul_n to_o the_o faithful_a be_v a_o apostle_n who_o peculiar_o rejoice_v in_o the_o increase_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v 11.23_o be_v act_n 11.23_o fill_v with_o heavenly_a satisfaction_n when_o he_o see_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n who_o be_v convert_v to_o the_o gospel_n 24._o gospel_n verse_n 24._o he_o be_v a_o good_a man_n and_o full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o of_o faith_n it_o be_v in_o abridgement_n the_o panegyric_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v of_o all_o his_o virtue_n it_o be_v that_o which_o cause_v the_o apostle_n to_o be_v satisfy_v with_o st._n paul_n and_o to_o consider_v he_o as_o a_o man_n true_o convert_v since_o that_o he_o be_v present_v to_o they_o by_o a_o apostle_n who_o faith_n zeal_n and_o virtue_n be_v so_o perfect_o know_v to_o they_o and_o have_v not_o i_o reason_n to_o hope_v that_o the_o true_a protestant_n will_v consider_v i_o as_o a_o man_n true_o convert_v when_o they_o shall_v see_v that_o it_o be_v you_o my_o lord_n who_o receive_v i_o into_o the_o church_n you_o to_o who_o god_n almighty_a have_v grant_v a_o peculiar_a gift_n of_o discern_v of_o spirit_n you_o who_o have_v no_o great_a joy_n in_o the_o world_n than_o to_o see_v the_o divine_a operation_n of_o grace_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o those_o who_o live_v former_o in_o error_n you_o who_o take_v so_o much_o care_n of_o those_o that_o be_v new_o convert_v who_o maintain_v so_o open_o their_o interest_n who_o take_v your_o delight_n in_o bring_v they_o up_o in_o keep_v they_o as_o young_a plant_n wherewith_o god_n be_v please_v to_o adorn_v his_o church_n notwithstanding_o all_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o propagation_n of_o the_o gospel_n you_o who_o integrity_n stop_v the_o mouth_n even_o of_o all_o those_o who_o be_v the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v become_v your_o enemy_n you_o in_o fine_a my_o lord_n who_o zeal_n and_o faith_n appear_v every_o day_n so_o generous_o when_o there_o be_v something_o that_o concern_v the_o interest_n of_o god_n the_o glory_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o purity_n of_o his_o holy_a word_n have_v not_o i_o reason_n say_v i_o to_o think_v that_o all_o the_o faithful_a will_v not_o doubt_v of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o my_o conduct_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o shall_v know_v that_o it_o be_v you_o my_o lord_n who_o receive_v i_o into_o the_o church_n and_o that_o you_o have_v be_v please_v to_o receive_v i_o likewise_o into_o your_o protection_n your_o most_o humble_a and_o most_o obedient_a servant_n lewis_n des-écotais_a table_n introduction_n §_o 1._o les_fw-fr raisin_n qui_fw-fr m'ont_fw-fr engagé_fw-fr d'escrire_fw-fr ces_fw-fr memoires_n page_n 1._o §_o 2._o que_fw-fr la_fw-fr conversion_n d'un_fw-fr homme_fw-fr qui_fw-fr a_fw-fr uêcu_fw-la dans_fw-fr les_fw-fr erreur_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a est_fw-fr un_fw-fr tres_fw-fr grand_fw-fr miracle_n pag._n 5._o §_o 3._o de_fw-fr quelle_fw-fr maniere_n et_fw-fr par_fw-fr quell_v degrés_fw-fr l'esprit_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr m'a_fw-fr fait_fw-fr connoître_fw-fr mes_fw-fr erreur_n pag._n 9_o premiere_n party_n que_fw-fr la_fw-fr doctrine_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a n'est_fw-mi point_n fondée_fw-fr ny_fw-fr sur_fw-fr les_fw-fr escriture_n ny_fw-fr sur_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr ny_fw-fr sur_fw-fr l'authorité_fw-fr des_fw-fr saint_n peres_n chap._n 1._o commant_fw-fr j'ay_fw-fr connu_fw-fr que_fw-fr la_fw-fr doctrine_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a n'est_fw-mi point_n fondée_fw-fr sur_fw-fr l'ecriture_n §_o 1._o la_fw-fr lecture_n de_fw-fr l'ecriture_n sainte_n i_o dispose_v à _fw-fr reconnoistre_fw-fr les_fw-fr erreur_n de_fw-fr rome_n pag._n 11._o §_o 2._o les_fw-fr erreur_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a doubt_n
j'estois_fw-fr persuadé_v i_o firent_a trouver_fw-fr dans_fw-fr l'escriture_n bien_fw-fr des_fw-fr difficultés_fw-fr bien_fw-fr des_fw-fr insuffisance_n et_fw-fr bien_fw-fr des_fw-fr contradiction_n pag._n 16._o §_o 3._o circonstances_fw-fr qui_fw-fr contribuerent_fw-la à _fw-la l'avancement_n de_fw-fr ma_fw-fr conversion_n pag._n 22._o §_o 4._o conclusion_n de_fw-fr ce_fw-fr chapitre_fw-fr que_fw-fr les_fw-fr article_n de_fw-fr foy_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a ne_fw-mi se_fw-mi peuvent_fw-fr point_fw-fr prouver_fw-fr par_fw-fr l'ecriture_n pag._n 26._o chap._n ii_o commant_n je_fw-fr connûs_fw-fr cue_n les_fw-fr article_n de_fw-fr foy_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a ne_fw-mi sont_fw-fr point_fw-fr fondés_fw-fr sur_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr ny_fw-fr sur_fw-fr l'authorité_fw-fr des_fw-fr saint_n peres_n introduction_n la_fw-fr lecture_n des_fw-fr liures_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr perpetuité_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr foy_fw-fr sur_fw-fr le_fw-fr sujet_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eucharistie_a fut_o cequi_fw-la i_o donna_fw-fr occasion_n d'examiner_n en_fw-fr particulier_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a sur_fw-fr cette_fw-fr matiere_a pag._n 30._o division_n des_fw-fr erreur_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a touchant_a l'eucharistie_a pag._n 34._o section_n 1._o que_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr rome_n touchant_a la_o presence_n reéle_v au_fw-fr sens_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr transubstatiation_n est_fw-fr une_fw-fr doctrine_n nouvelle_fw-fr dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr i._o premiere_n preuve_n tirée_n des_fw-fr argument_n dont_fw-fr les_fw-fr peres_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr se_fw-fr sont_fw-fr seruis_fw-la en_fw-fr disputant_n contre_fw-fr les_fw-fr idolatre_v pag._n 36._o ii_o second_o preuve_n tirée_v des_fw-fr raisons_fw-fr dont_fw-fr les_fw-fr peres_n se_fw-fr servoient_fw-fr pour_fw-fr disputer_fw-fr contre_fw-fr les_fw-fr heretic_n pag._n 41._o iii_o troisieme_n preuve_n tirée_a dela_n maniere_v dont_fw-fr les_fw-fr peres_n s'expriment_n sur_fw-fr le_fw-fr sujet_fw-fr du_fw-fr saint_n sacrament_n pag._n 44._o iv_o quatrieme_n preuve_n tirée_a dela_n nouveauté_fw-fr dela_n doctrine_n dela_n transubstantiation_n pag._n 48._o section_n ii_o queen_n ceque_fw-la l'on_n ensign_n du_fw-fr sacrifice_n dela_n messe_n dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a est_fw-fr une_fw-fr doctrine_n contraire_fw-fr à la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr i._n en_fw-fr quel_fw-fr sens_fw-fr il_fw-fr est_fw-fr veritable_a de_fw-fr dire_fw-fr que_fw-fr le_fw-fr saint_n sacrament_n est_fw-fr un_fw-fr sacrifice_n pag._n 50._o ii_o que_fw-fr le_fw-fr pretendu_fw-fr sacrifice_n propitiatoire_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a est_fw-fr contraire_fw-fr à _fw-fr l'ecriture_n pag._n 53._o iii_o cequi_fw-la a_o donné_fw-fr occasion_n à _fw-fr cet_fw-fr erreur_fw-fr et_fw-fr les_fw-fr degrés_fw-fr de_fw-fr corruption_n qui_fw-fr ont_fw-fr avancé_fw-la cette_fw-fr creance_n pag._n 56._o iu._n que_fw-fr l'abus_fw-la épouvantable_a qui_fw-fr s'est_fw-fr glissé_fw-fr dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a d'offrir_fw-fr leur_fw-fr sacrifice_n en_fw-fr l'honneur_fw-fr des_fw-fr saint_n est_fw-fr une_fw-fr pratique_a contraire_fw-fr à _fw-fr toute_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr pag._n 59_o section_n iii_o queen_n la_fw-fr maniere_n d'administrer_fw-fr l'eucharistie_a dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a est_fw-la tout_fw-fr à _fw-fr fait_fw-fr different_a et_fw-fr bien_fw-fr opposée_fw-fr à _fw-fr celle_fw-fr dont_fw-fr on_o se_fw-fr servoit_fw-fr dans_fw-fr les_fw-fr premiers_fw-fr siecles_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr i._n que_fw-fr du_fw-fr temps_fw-fr des_fw-fr apôtres_fw-fr et_fw-fr dans_fw-fr les_fw-fr premiers_fw-fr siecles_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr on_o communjoyt_fw-fr tout_fw-fr le_fw-fr peuple_n sous_fw-fr les_fw-fr espece_n du_fw-fr pain_n et_fw-fr du_fw-fr vin_fw-fr on_o adoroit_fw-fr point_fw-fr l'hostie_a et_fw-la on_o ne_fw-fr celebroit_fw-fr point_fw-fr les_fw-fr saint_n mysteres_n en_fw-fr language_n inconnu_fw-fr pag._n 64._o ii_o l'origine_fw-la de_fw-la toutes_fw-fr les_fw-fr erreur_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a en_fw-fr l'administration_n du_fw-fr sacrament_n p._n 70._o 1._o l'origine_fw-la du_fw-fr retranchement_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr coupe_fw-fr pag._n 71._o 2._o l'origine_fw-la de_fw-la l'adoration_n de_fw-fr l'hostie_a p._n 74._o 3._o l'origine_fw-la de_fw-fr la_fw-fr celebration_n de_fw-fr l'eucharistie_a en_fw-fr une_fw-fr langue_n que_fw-fr le_fw-fr peuple_n n'entend_v point_n pag._n 78._o conclusion_n de_fw-fr cette_fw-fr premiere_n party_n que_fw-fr les_fw-fr article_n de_fw-fr foy_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a ne_fw-mi se_fw-mi peuvent_fw-fr prouver_fw-fr ny_fw-fr par_fw-fr la_fw-fr pratique_a de_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr ny_fw-fr par_fw-fr le_fw-fr témoignage_n des_fw-fr ancient_n peres_n pag._n 80._o second_o party_n que_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a n'est_fw-mi point_n la_fw-fr veritable_a eglise_fw-fr que_fw-fr son_fw-fr authorité_fw-fr n'est_fw-fr point_fw-fr infaillible_a et_fw-fr qu'elle_fw-fr n'est_fw-fr remplie_v que_fw-fr de_fw-fr corruption_n et_fw-fr d'erreur_n introduction_n la_fw-fr providence_n fit_a naistre_fw-mi des_fw-fr occasion_n qui_fw-fr i_o firent_a prendre_fw-fr la_fw-fr resolution_n d'examiner_n serieusement_n les_fw-fr principes_fw-la sur_fw-fr lesquels_fw-fr est_fw-fr fondé_v l'article_n de_fw-fr l'authorité_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a pag._n 1._o 1._o l'occasion_n qui_fw-fr fut_fw-fr cause_n que_fw-fr j'examinay_n de_fw-fr nouveau_fw-fr tous_fw-fr les_fw-fr article_n de_fw-fr foy_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a lesquels_fw-fr je_fw-fr reduisois_fw-fr tous_fw-fr à _fw-fr l'authorité_fw-fr de_fw-fr cette_fw-fr eglise_fw-fr pag._n 3._o 2._o l'occasion_n que_fw-fr j'eus_fw-la de_fw-fr douter_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'infaillibilité_n du_fw-fr pape_n i_o fit_a prendre_fw-fr la_fw-fr resolution_n d'examiner_n de_fw-fr nouveau_fw-fr et_fw-fr sans_fw-fr passion_n sur_fw-fr quoy_fw-fr est_fw-fr fondée_fw-fr l'authorité_fw-fr dont_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a se_fw-mi vaunt_v si_fw-mi fort_n pag._n 6._o 3._o les_fw-fr circumstance_n avec_fw-fr lesquelles_fw-fr je_fw-fr commancay_fw-fr de_fw-fr fair_a cet_fw-fr examen_fw-la et_fw-fr quel_fw-fr est_fw-fr mon_fw-fr dessein_fw-fr dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr recit_fw-la que_fw-fr j'en_fw-fr fais_fw-fr icy_a pag._n 12._o chap._n i._n des_fw-mi pretendus_fw-la fondeman_n de_fw-la l'authorité_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a pag._n 16._o section_n i._n que_fw-fr l'_fw-fr antiquité_fw-fr la_fw-fr multitude_n et_fw-fr la_fw-fr succession_n ne_fw-fr sont_fw-fr point_fw-fr des_fw-fr privilege_n que_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a possede_n par_fw-fr dessus_fw-fr les_fw-fr autres_fw-fr eglise_n p._n 20._o §_o 1._o que_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a n'est_fw-mi pas_fw-fr la_fw-fr plus_fw-fr ancienne_fw-fr de_fw-fr tontes_fw-la les_fw-fr eglise_n pag._n 21._o §_o 2._o que_fw-fr la_fw-fr multitude_n n'est_fw-fr pas_fw-fr du_fw-fr costé_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a pag._n 25._o §_o 3._o que_fw-fr d'autres_fw-fr eglise_n aussi_fw-fr bien_fw-fr que_fw-fr la_fw-fr roman_a on_o it_o leur_fw-fr succession_n d'evéque_fw-fr en_fw-fr euéque_fw-fr depuis_fw-fr les_fw-fr apôtres_fw-fr pag._n 29._o section_n ii_o que_fw-fr ny_fw-fr l'antiquité_fw-fr ny_fw-fr la_fw-fr multitude_n ny_fw-fr la_fw-fr succession_n ne_fw-fr sont_fw-fr point_fw-fr des_fw-fr marquess_n infaillibles_fw-fr dela_n veritable_a eglise_fw-fr et_fw-fr que_fw-fr par_fw-fr consequent_a une_fw-fr eglise_fw-fr peut_fw-fr avoir_fw-fr toutes_fw-fr ces_fw-fr marquess_n et_fw-fr ne_fw-fr pas_fw-fr laisser_fw-fr pour_fw-fr cela_fw-fr d'estre_fw-fr heretic_n pag._n 32._o §_o 1._o que_fw-fr l'_fw-fr antiquité_fw-fr n'est_fw-fr pas_fw-fr une_fw-fr mark_n infaillible_a de_fw-fr la_fw-fr veritable_a eglise_fw-fr pag._n 33._o §_o 2._o que_fw-fr la_fw-fr multitude_n n'est_fw-fr pas_fw-fr une_fw-fr mark_n infaillible_a de_fw-fr la_fw-fr veritable_a eglise_fw-fr pag._n 39_o §_o 3._o que_fw-fr la_fw-fr succession_n n'est_fw-fr pas_fw-fr une_fw-fr mark_n infaillible_a de_fw-fr la_fw-fr veritable_a eglise_fw-fr pag._n 45._o conclusion_n que_fw-fr c'est_fw-fr la_fw-fr succession_n dela_n veritable_a doctrine_n depuis_fw-fr les_fw-fr apôtres_fw-fr qui_fw-fr est_fw-fr une_fw-fr mark_n infaillible_a dela_n veritable_a eglise_fw-fr et_fw-fr que_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr de_fw-fr rome_n qui_fw-fr n'a_fw-fr point_fw-fr la_fw-fr succession_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr veritable_a doctrine_n n'a_fw-fr pas_fw-fr sujet_fw-fr de_fw-fr se_fw-fr vaunter_n ny_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'_fw-fr antiquité_fw-fr ny_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr multitude_n ny_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr succession_n pag._n 51._o chap._n ii_o des_fw-mi fondement_n veritable_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a d'apresent_v pag._n 56._o section_n 1._o de_fw-fr l'ambition_n des_fw-fr papes_n §_o 1._o le_fw-fr pape_n s'éleve_fw-fr au_fw-fr dessus_fw-fr des_fw-fr roys_n au_fw-fr lieu_fw-fr que_fw-fr de_fw-fr droit_fw-fr il_fw-fr deveroit_fw-fr leur_fw-fr estre_fw-fr soûmis_fw-fr pag._n 57_o §_o 2._o que_fw-fr le_fw-fr pape_n s'éleve_fw-fr au_fw-fr dessus_fw-fr de_fw-fr toutes_fw-fr les_fw-fr eglise_n en_fw-fr s'atribuant_fw-fr injustement_fw-fr la_fw-fr primauté_fw-fr et_fw-fr le_fw-fr titre_fw-fr d'evéque_fw-fr vniversel_n et_fw-fr que_fw-fr s'attribuer_fw-fr ce_fw-fr titre_fw-fr c'est_fw-fr un_fw-fr blaspheme_n et_fw-fr une_fw-fr apostasy_n dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr christianisme_n pag._n 62._o §_o 3._o que_fw-fr l'ambition_n des_fw-fr pape_n va_fw-fr jusqu'à _fw-fr l'impieté_fw-fr pag._n 69._o 1._o que_fw-fr le_fw-fr pape_n s'attribüe_fw-fr une_fw-fr authorité_fw-fr aussi_fw-fr grande_fw-fr que_fw-fr celle_fw-fr qu'on_n attribüe_fw-fr à _fw-fr dieu_fw-fr pag._n 70._o 2._o que_fw-fr le_fw-fr pape_n s'attribüe_fw-fr même_fw-fr des_fw-fr tittres_n que_fw-fr l'on_n attribüe_fw-fr qu'à _fw-fr dieu_fw-fr et_fw-fr à _fw-fr jesus_n christ_n nôtre_fw-fr seigneur_fw-fr uray_fw-fr fils_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr pag._n 72._o section_n ii_o de_fw-fr l'avarice_n des_fw-fr papes_n pag._n 76._o conclusion_n de_fw-fr cette_fw-fr second_o party_n que_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a n'estant_n fondée_fw-fr que_fw-fr sur_fw-fr les_fw-fr principes_fw-la que_fw-fr j'ay_fw-fr rapportés_fw-fr
of_o the_o succession_n pag._n 51._o chap._n ii_o of_o the_o true_a ground_n of_o the_o now_o roman_a church_n 56_o section_n i._o of_o the_o ambition_n of_o the_o pope_n §_o 1._o the_o pope_n rise_v above_o all_o king_n whereas_o by_o right_n he_o ought_v to_o submit_v to_o they_o pag._n 57_o §_o 2._o that_o the_o pope_n rise_v above_o all_o church_n take_v unjust_o to_o himself_o the_o primacy_n and_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o blasphemy_n and_o a_o apostasy_n in_o christendom_n to_o take_v upon_o he_o such_o a_o title_n pag._n 62._o §_o 3._o that_o the_o ambition_n of_o the_o pope_n extend_v itself_o as_o far_o as_o impiety_n pag._n 69._o 1._o that_o the_o pope_n take_v to_o himself_o as_o great_a a_o authority_n as_o that_o of_o god_n almighty_n pag._n 70._o 2._o that_o the_o pope_n take_v to_o himself_o the_o same_o title_n which_o we_o have_v use_v to_o give_v but_o unto_o god_n and_o unto_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n the_o true_a son_n of_o god_n pag._n 72._o section_n ii_o the_o covetousness_n of_o the_o pope_n pag._n 76._o conclusion_n of_o the_o second_o part._n that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v ground_v only_o upon_o the_o principle_n which_o i_o have_v rehearse_v be_v fall_v into_o corruption_n and_o error_n §_o 1._o a_o horrid_a corruption_n in_o its_o manner_n pag._n 80._o §_o 2._o some_o extreme_o gross_a error_n in_o its_o doctrine_n pag._n 84._o general_n conclusion_n that_o i_o be_v engage_v to_o go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n after_o that_o god_n almighty_n have_v make_v i_o know_v its_o error_n by_o the_o degree_n which_o i_o have_v rehearse_v in_o the_o two_o part_n of_o this_o discourse_n pag._n 88_o §_o 1._o the_o occasion_n of_o a_o sermon_n which_o i_o preach_v about_o the_o sacrament_n call_v again_o in_o my_o mind_n all_o the_o notion_n i_o have_v of_o the_o error_n of_o rome_n pag._n 91._o §_o 2._o the_o difficulty_n that_o i_o suffer_v and_o the_o opposition_n which_o i_o have_v to_o overcome_v p._n 94._o §_o 2._o the_o reason_n which_o i_o think_v upon_o in_o my_o mind_n to_o defer_v my_o conversion_n p._n 96._o §_o 4._o god_n through_o his_o mercy_n make_v i_o understand_v how_o great_a a_o sin_n it_o be_v to_o witstand_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o so_o make_v a_o end_n of_o my_o conversion_n bring_v i_o to_o forsake_v generous_o the_o communion_n of_o rome_n p._n 101._o memoires_n mementote_fw-la mirabilium_fw-la ejus_fw-la quae_fw-la fecit_fw-la prodigia_fw-la ejus_fw-la et_fw-la judicia_fw-la oris_fw-la ejus_fw-la psal._n 104._o verse_n 5._o cantabiles_fw-la mihi_fw-la erant_fw-la justificationes_fw-la tuus_fw-la in_o loco_fw-la peregrinationis_fw-la meae_fw-la psal_n 119._o verse_n 54._o memoires_n introduction_n §_o 1._o les_fw-fr raisin_n qui_fw-fr m'ont_fw-fr engagé_fw-fr d'écrire_fw-fr ces_fw-fr memoires_n je_fw-fr me_fw-it considere_fw-la comme_fw-fr un_fw-fr pecheur_fw-fr public_a puisque_fw-fr j'ay_fw-fr fait_fw-fr profession_n dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a d'une_fw-fr doctrine_n contraire_fw-fr à _fw-fr l'evangile_a je_fw-fr regard_n la_fw-fr vie_fw-fr que_fw-fr j'ay_fw-fr passé_fw-fr dans_fw-fr cette_fw-fr eglise_fw-fr comme_fw-fr une_fw-fr apostasy_n formelle_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr foy_fw-fr et_fw-fr je_fw-fr regard_n toutes_fw-fr les_fw-fr erreur_n que_fw-fr j'y_fw-fr ay_fw-fr enseignées_fw-fr comme_fw-fr des_fw-fr heresy_n scandaleuse_v mais_fw-fr apres_fw-fr m'estre_fw-fr regardé_v comme_fw-fr un_fw-fr homme_fw-fr qui_fw-fr vivoit_fw-fr dans_fw-fr une_fw-fr heresy_n scandaleuse_fw-fr je_fw-fr i_o regard_n aussi_fw-fr comme_fw-fr un_fw-fr homme_fw-fr qui_fw-fr ay_fw-fr fait_fw-fr abjuration_n de_fw-fr cette_fw-fr heresy_n apres_fw-fr m'estre_fw-fr regardé_v comme_fw-fr une_fw-fr personne_fw-fr que_fw-fr mes_fw-fr peer_n avoient_fw-fr engagé_fw-fr comme_fw-fr naturellement_fw-fr à _fw-fr estre_fw-fr apostate_n de_fw-fr l'evangile_a je_fw-fr i_o regard_n comme_fw-fr releué_fw-fr de_fw-fr cette_fw-fr apostasy_n par_fw-fr la_fw-fr profession_n que_fw-la i_o '_o ay_fw-fr faite_fw-fr depuis_fw-fr deux_fw-fr ans_fw-fr dela_n pureté_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'evangile_a et_fw-fr enfin_fw-fr apres_fw-fr m'_fw-fr estre_fw-fr consideré_fw-la comme_fw-fr un_fw-fr pecheur_fw-fr public_a engagé_fw-fr par_fw-fr ma_fw-fr profession_n à _fw-fr seduire_n les_fw-fr peuples_fw-fr et_fw-fr à _fw-fr obscurcir_fw-fr les_fw-fr veritéz_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'evangile_a en_fw-fr seduisant_a ceux_fw-fr que_fw-fr j'estois_fw-fr obligé_fw-fr d'inftruire_n je_fw-fr i_o regard_n comme_fw-fr un_fw-fr penitent_n qui_fw-la apres_fw-fr avoir_fw-fr demeuré_fw-fr deux_fw-fr années_fw-fr dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr premier_fw-fr degré_fw-fr dela_n penitence_n dans_fw-fr le_fw-mi ring_v des_fw-fr ecoutans_n come_v il_fw-fr estoit_fw-fr ordonné_fw-fr dans_fw-fr les_fw-fr canon_n dela_n primitive_a eglise_fw-fr vient_fw-fr se_fw-fr presenter_n aux_fw-fr evesques_n leur_fw-fr demand_n la_fw-fr permission_n d'estre_fw-fr receu_fw-fr dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr et_fw-fr de_fw-fr monter_v par_fw-fr les_fw-fr degrés_fw-fr que_fw-fr demandent_fw-la ces_fw-fr mesme_n canon_n à _fw-fr l'estat_fw-mi de_fw-fr lamiere_n et_fw-fr de_fw-fr foy_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr pouvoit_fw-fr pretendre_fw-fr par_fw-fr son_fw-fr baptesme_fw-fr et_fw-fr duquel_fw-fr il_fw-fr s'estoit_fw-fr eloigné_fw-fr par_fw-fr ses_fw-fr erreur_n et_fw-fr comme_fw-fr je_fw-fr considere_fw-la messeigneurs_fw-fr les_fw-fr eveque_v comme_fw-fr mes_fw-fr superieurs_fw-fr naturelle_n et_fw-fr comme_fw-fr autant_fw-fr de_fw-fr juges_fw-la qui_fw-la i_o sont_fw-fr assignés_fw-fr pour_fw-fr me_fw-it declarer_fw-la les_fw-fr ordres_n de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr je_fw-fr i_o sens_fw-fr obligé_fw-fr de_fw-fr leur_fw-fr rendre_fw-fr comte_fw-fr de_fw-fr ma_fw-fr conduitte_v et_fw-fr de_fw-fr leur_fw-fr declarer_fw-la sincerement_n les_fw-fr moyens_fw-fr dont_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr s'est_fw-fr servy_a pour_fw-fr m'_fw-fr attirer_fw-fr à _fw-fr la_fw-fr lumiere_fw-la de_fw-fr son_fw-fr evangile_n voila_fw-fr la_fw-fr premiere_n raison_n qui_fw-la m'oblige_v d'écrire_fw-fr une_fw-fr autre_fw-fr raison_n c'est_fw-fr que_fw-fr je_fw-fr me_fw-it considere_fw-la comme_fw-fr un_fw-fr homme_fw-fr sorty_fw-la d'une_fw-fr grande_fw-fr captivité_fw-fr et_fw-fr deliuré_fw-fr d'une_fw-fr obscure_a prison_n quand_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr eut_fw-fr deliuré_fw-fr st._n pierre_n dela_n prison_n par_fw-fr le_fw-fr moyen_fw-fr d'un_fw-fr ange_n qu'il_fw-fr luy_fw-fr envoya_n l'ecriture_n i_o fait_fw-fr comprendre_fw-fr que_fw-fr les_fw-fr fidelle_n s'_fw-fr assembloient_fw-fr autour_fw-fr de_fw-fr luy_fw-fr et_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr leur_fw-fr racontoit_fw-fr les_fw-fr moyens_fw-fr merveilleux_fw-fr dont_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr s'_fw-fr estoit_fw-fr servy_a pour_fw-fr le_fw-fr deliurer_n dela_n captivité_fw-fr je_fw-fr ne_fw-fr doute_fw-fr pas_fw-fr que_fw-fr les_fw-fr ames_n saint_n zelées_n de_fw-fr l'honneur_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr dela_n pureté_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'evangile_a et_fw-fr du_fw-fr salut_fw-fr des_fw-fr ames_n si_fw-mi toss_v qu'elles_fw-mi entendent_n dire_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr a_fw-fr pleu_fw-fr à _fw-fr dieu_fw-fr de_fw-fr deliurer_n un_fw-fr de_fw-fr leur_fw-fr freres_fw-mi dela_n captivité_fw-fr du_fw-fr demon_n ét_v dela_n prison_n du_fw-fr pape_n ne_fw-fr s'_fw-fr assemblent_fw-fr aussi_fw-fr toast_n autour_fw-fr de_fw-fr luy_fw-fr pour_fw-fr luy_fw-fr demander_n les_fw-fr moyens_fw-fr dont_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr s'est_fw-fr servy_a pour_fw-fr le_fw-fr retirer_fw-fr d'une_fw-fr si_fw-fr horrible_a captivité_fw-fr ah_o dite_fw-fr nous_fw-fr un_fw-fr peu_fw-fr disent_fw-fr ces_fw-fr ames_n saintement_fw-fr curieuse_n quell_v on_o it_o esté_fw-fr les_fw-fr motifs_fw-fr de_fw-fr votre_fw-fr conversion_n n'avés_fw-fr vous_fw-fr pas_fw-fr eu_fw-fr bien_fw-fr dela_n peine_fw-fr à _fw-fr vous_fw-fr separer_fw-la de_fw-fr tous_fw-fr vos_fw-fr amis_n à _fw-fr quitter_fw-fr toutes_fw-fr vos_fw-fr connoissance_n pour_fw-fr venir_fw-fr viure_fw-fr dans_fw-fr un_fw-fr pays_n estranger_fw-fr je_fw-fr m'imigine_fw-la que_fw-fr les_fw-fr peuples_fw-fr qui_fw-fr vivent_fw-la sous_fw-fr la_fw-fr domination_n du_fw-fr pape_n sont_fw-fr dans_fw-fr une_fw-fr ignorance_n espouvantable_a des_fw-fr choses_fw-fr necessaires_fw-fr au_fw-fr salut_fw-fr ah_o s'il_fw-fr plaisoit_fw-fr à _fw-fr sa_fw-fr divine_a majesté_fw-fr de_fw-fr les_fw-fr eclairer_n de_fw-fr ses_fw-fr lumieres_fw-fr je_fw-fr ne_fw-fr doute_fw-fr point_fw-fr que_fw-fr les_fw-fr personnes_fw-fr sçavante_n et_fw-fr tous_fw-fr les_fw-fr prestre_n qui_fw-fr ont_fw-fr la_fw-fr liberté_fw-fr de_fw-fr lire_fw-fr l'escriture_n sainte_n ne_fw-la connoissent_fw-la parfaitement_fw-fr qu'ils_fw-fr sont_fw-fr dans_fw-fr l'erreur_fw-fr ah_o s'il_fw-fr plaisoit_fw-fr à _fw-fr dieu_fw-fr de_fw-fr les_fw-fr toucher_n du_fw-fr zele_n de_fw-fr leur_fw-fr salut_fw-fr et_fw-fr de_fw-fr les_fw-fr convertir_fw-fr comme_fw-fr il_fw-fr vous_fw-fr a_o converty_n ah_o que_fw-fr vous_fw-fr aués_fw-fr de_fw-fr grace_n à _fw-fr rendre_fw-fr à dieu_o de_fw-fr ce_fw-fr quill_n vous_fw-fr a_fw-fr retiré_fw-fr dela_n tyranny_n dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr quelle_fw-fr vous_fw-fr esty_fw-fr né_fw-fr mais_n enfin_fw-fr nous_fw-fr serion_n bien_fw-fr aise_fw-fr de_fw-fr sçavoir_fw-fr les_fw-fr particularités_fw-fr de_fw-fr uôtre_fw-fr conversion_n et_fw-fr c'est_fw-fr pour_fw-fr vous_fw-fr les_fw-fr raconter_n que_fw-fr j'entreprens_fw-la ce_fw-fr discourse_n afin_fw-fr de_fw-fr vous_fw-fr engager_n de_fw-fr joindre_fw-fr vos_fw-fr action_n de_fw-fr grace_n aux_fw-fr miennes_n pour_fw-fr le_fw-fr remercier_fw-la pour_fw-fr le_fw-fr loiier_fw-fr pour_fw-fr le_fw-fr glorifier_n en_fw-fr admirant_fw-la les_fw-fr torrent_n de_fw-fr grace_n qu'il_fw-fr repand_v et_fw-fr les_fw-fr miracle_n qu'il_fw-fr opere_fw-la dans_fw-fr les_fw-fr ames_n de_fw-fr ceux_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr veut_fw-fr sauver_fw-fr §_o 2._o que_fw-fr la_fw-fr conversion_n d'un_fw-fr homme_fw-fr qui_fw-fr a_fw-fr vescu_fw-la dans_fw-fr les_fw-fr erreur_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a
discourse_n dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr premiere_n party_n je_fw-fr declareray_fw-fr comment_n j'ay_fw-fr compris_fw-fr que_fw-fr la_fw-fr doctrine_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a d'apresent_v n'est_fw-fr fondée_fw-fr ny_fw-fr sur_fw-fr le_fw-fr temoignage_n de_fw-fr l'escriture_n sainte_n ny_fw-fr sur_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr ny_fw-fr sur_fw-fr l'anthorité_fw-fr des_fw-fr saint_n peres_n et_fw-fr dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr second_o party_n je_fw-fr feray_fw-fr voir_fw-fr comment_n j'ay_fw-fr connû_fw-fr que_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr de_fw-fr rome_n n'est_fw-fr pas_fw-fr la_fw-fr veritable_a eglise_fw-fr que_fw-fr son_fw-fr authorité_fw-fr n'est_fw-fr pas_fw-fr infaillible_a et_fw-fr qu'elle_fw-fr est_fw-fr toute_fw-fr remplie_o d'erreur_n et_fw-fr de_fw-fr corruption_n premiere_n party_n la_fw-fr doctrine_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a n'est_fw-mi point_n fondée_fw-fr ny_fw-fr sur_fw-fr les_fw-fr escriture_n ny_fw-fr sur_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr ny_fw-fr sur_fw-fr l'authorité_fw-fr des_fw-fr saint_n peres_n chap._n 1._o comment_fw-fr j'ay_fw-fr compris_fw-fr que_fw-fr la_fw-fr doctrine_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a n'est_fw-fr point_fw-fr fondée_fw-fr sur_fw-fr l'ecriture_n §._o 1._o la_fw-fr lecture_n de_fw-fr l'escriture_n sainte_n i_o disposa_fw-la à _fw-fr reconnoistre_fw-fr les_fw-fr erreur_n de_fw-fr rome_n come_v j'estois_fw-fr dans_fw-fr les_fw-fr ordres_n ecclesiastiques_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr de_fw-fr rome_n je_fw-fr i_o croyois_fw-fr engagé_fw-fr comme_fw-fr tous_fw-fr les_fw-fr autres_fw-fr ecclesiastiques_n à _fw-fr reciter_n tous_fw-fr les_fw-fr jours_fw-fr le_fw-fr pseaume_n 119._o je_fw-fr lisois_fw-fr tous_fw-fr les_fw-fr jours_fw-fr ce_fw-fr pseaume_n 1._o ch._n 1._o §._o 1._o avec_fw-fr le_fw-fr plus_fw-fr d'attention_n qu'il_fw-fr m'estoit_fw-fr possible_a l'obligation_n de_fw-fr le_fw-fr reciter_n si_fw-fr souvent_fw-fr ne_fw-fr i_o faisoit_fw-fr point_fw-fr de_fw-fr peine_fw-fr et_fw-fr quoyque_a je_fw-fr m'ennüiasse_n de_fw-fr reciter_n ou_fw-fr d'entendre_fw-fr reciter_n je_fw-fr ne_fw-fr sçay_fw-fr combien_fw-fr d'histoires_fw-fr fabuleuse_n que_fw-fr l'on_n trouve_fw-fr dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr breviaire_fw-fr je_fw-fr ne_fw-fr sçay_fw-fr combien_fw-fr d'application_n de_fw-fr l'escriture_n à _fw-fr contre_fw-fr sens_fw-fr et_fw-fr je_fw-fr ne_fw-fr sçay_fw-fr combien_fw-fr d'oremus_fw-la et_fw-fr de_fw-fr litany_n où_fw-fr l'on_n s'addresse_v aux_fw-fr saint_n les_fw-fr uns_fw-fr apres_fw-fr les_fw-fr autres_fw-fr pour_fw-fr obtenir_fw-fr d'eux_fw-fr ceque_fw-la l'on_n ne_fw-fr doit_fw-fr esperer_n que_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr seul_fw-fr je_fw-fr ne_fw-fr m'ennüiois_fw-mi jamais_fw-fr d'entendre_fw-fr lire_fw-fr l'escriture_n sainte_n toute_fw-fr pure_a principalement_fw-fr ce_fw-fr pseaume_n 119._o pour_fw-fr lequel_fw-fr j'avois_fw-fr un_fw-fr attrait_n tout_fw-fr particulier_fw-fr je_fw-fr i_o transportois_n dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr avec_fw-fr joy_n j'ouvrois_fw-fr mon_fw-fr breviaire_fw-fr avec_fw-fr plaisir_fw-fr pour_fw-fr reciter_n ce_fw-fr pseaume_n et_fw-fr j'y_fw-fr decovurois_fw-fr tous_fw-fr les_fw-fr jours_fw-fr quelques_fw-fr nouvelles_fw-fr lumieres_fw-fr qui_fw-fr m'engageoient_fw-fr à _fw-fr concevoir_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'estime_fw-fr pour_fw-fr la_fw-fr parole_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr c'est_fw-fr dans_fw-fr ce_fw-fr pseaume_n que_fw-fr j'apprenois_n que_fw-fr la_fw-fr parole_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr est_fw-fr un_fw-fr excellent_a remede_o pour_fw-fr guerir_fw-fr toutes_fw-fr les_fw-fr malady_n de_fw-fr nos_fw-la ames_n en_fw-fr les_fw-fr retirant_n de_fw-fr leur_fw-fr debauch_n et_fw-la que_fw-fr c'est_fw-fr un_fw-fr admirable_a preservatif_n pour_fw-fr les_fw-fr empecher_n de_fw-fr retomber_fw-fr dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr peché_n c'est_fw-fr la_fw-fr que_fw-fr j'apprenois_n qu'une_fw-fr mark_n infaillible_a pour_fw-fr connoistre_fw-fr si_fw-fr un_fw-fr homme_fw-fr craint_n dieu_fw-fr c'est_fw-fr de_fw-fr sçavoir_fw-fr s'il_fw-fr est_fw-fr bien_fw-fr aise_fw-fr de_fw-fr voir_fw-fr et_fw-fr de_fw-fr frequenter_a ceux_fw-fr qui_fw-fr mettent_n toute_fw-fr leur_fw-fr esperance_fw-fr en_fw-fr sa_fw-fr sainte_n parole_fw-fr c'est_fw-fr la_fw-fr que_fw-fr j'apprenois_n que_fw-fr le_fw-fr moyen_fw-fr de_fw-fr devenir_fw-fr plus_fw-fr sage_a que_fw-fr nos_fw-la ennemis_fw-fr plus_fw-fr eclairez_fw-fr que_fw-fr ceux_fw-fr qui_fw-fr nous_fw-fr ont_fw-fr enseigné_fw-fr et_fw-fr plus_fw-fr prudent_n que_fw-fr nos_fw-it peres_n c'est_fw-fr d'aimer_n les_fw-fr saintes_n escriture_n et_fw-la d'en_o fair_a tout_fw-fr le_fw-fr jour_fw-fr entier_fw-fr nôtre_fw-fr principale_a estude_n c'est_fw-fr la_fw-fr que_fw-fr j'apprenois_n que_fw-fr la_fw-fr parole_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr est_fw-fr un_fw-fr saint_n contract_n tout_fw-fr plein_fw-fr de_fw-fr promess_n obligeante_n que_fw-fr le_fw-fr seigneur_fw-fr a_fw-fr fait_fw-fr aux_fw-fr hommes_fw-fr de_fw-fr les_fw-fr fortifier_n dans_fw-fr leur_fw-fr affliction_n de_fw-fr les_fw-fr consoler_fw-fr dans_fw-fr leur_fw-fr tristesse_n de_fw-fr les_fw-fr remplir_fw-fr de_fw-fr ses_fw-fr aymables_fw-fr misericordes_fw-la de_fw-fr les_fw-fr sauver_n de_fw-fr les_fw-fr traitter_n avee_a douceur_fw-fr de_fw-fr prendre_fw-fr leur_fw-fr protection_n et_fw-fr de_fw-fr les_fw-fr deliurer_n de_fw-fr leur_fw-fr ennemis_fw-fr c'est_fw-fr la_fw-fr que_fw-fr j'apprenois_n que_fw-fr les_fw-fr saint_n doivent_fw-fr plus_fw-fr fair_a d'estat_fw-mi de_fw-fr la_fw-fr parole_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr que_fw-fr de_fw-fr tout_fw-fr cequ'il_fw-fr y_fw-fr a_o d'or_n et_fw-fr d'argent_fw-fr dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr monde_fw-fr qu'ils_fw-fr en_fw-fr font_n le_fw-fr sujet_fw-fr de_fw-fr leur_fw-fr meditation_n continnelle_n que_fw-fr cequi_fw-la irrite_fw-la davantage_fw-fr leur_fw-fr zele_n c'est_fw-fr de_fw-fr voir_fw-fr que_fw-fr leur_fw-fr ennemis_fw-fr qui_fw-fr ne_fw-fr sont_fw-fr autres_fw-fr que_fw-fr les_fw-fr ennemis_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr oublient_n sa_o saint_n parole_fw-fr la_fw-fr banissent_fw-la de_fw-fr leur_fw-fr coeur_fw-fr et_fw-fr n'en_fw-fr font_n point_fw-fr d'estat_fw-mi c'est_fw-fr la_fw-fr que_fw-fr j'apprenois_n qu'il_fw-fr n'y_fw-fr a_fw-fr rien_fw-fr de_fw-fr plus_fw-fr doux_fw-fr et_fw-fr de_fw-fr plus_fw-fr agreeable_a que_fw-fr la_fw-fr parole_fw-fr de_fw-fr dive_v que_fw-fr l'escriture_n est_fw-fr une_fw-fr lamp_n pour_fw-fr nous_fw-fr conduire_n une_fw-fr lumiere_n pour_fw-fr nous_fw-fr eclairer_n que_fw-fr la_fw-fr simple_a declaration_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr parole_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr est_fw-fr suffisante_n pour_v illuminer_n une_fw-fr be_o et_fw-la pour_fw-fr donner_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'entendement_n aux_fw-fr plus_fw-fr ignorant_n que_fw-fr la_fw-fr parole_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr est_fw-fr pure_a qu'elle_fw-fr est_fw-fr veritable_a et_fw-fr que_fw-fr sa_fw-fr durée_n c'est_fw-fr la_fw-fr durée_n de_fw-fr l'eternité_fw-fr ces_n saintes_n pensées_fw-fr d'un_fw-fr prophet_n animé_fw-fr du_fw-fr saint_n esprit_fw-fr se_fw-fr venioent_fw-fr tous_fw-fr les_fw-fr jours_fw-fr presenter_n à _fw-fr mes_fw-fr yeux_fw-fr avec_fw-fr de_fw-fr nouveaux_fw-fr attraits_n et_fw-fr i_o firent_a concevoir_fw-fr une_fw-fr si_fw-fr haute_fw-fr estime_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr parole_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr que_fw-fr je_fw-fr pris_fw-fr resolution_n de_fw-fr fair_a de_fw-fr l'escriture_n sainte_n mon_fw-fr estude_n particuliere_fw-la je_fw-fr lûs_fw-fr d'abord_fw-fr plusieurs_fw-fr fois_fw-fr la_fw-fr veersion_n de_fw-fr l'escriture_n sainte_n que_fw-fr l'on_n appelle_fw-fr la_fw-fr vulgate_n qui_fw-fr est_fw-fr celle_fw-fr que_fw-fr l'on_n lit_fw-fr ordinairement_n dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr de_fw-fr rome_n ensuite_fw-fr ayant_fw-fr obtenu_fw-fr la_fw-fr permission_n de_fw-fr lire_fw-fr la_fw-fr bible_n en_fw-fr langue_n vulgaire_a come_v je_fw-fr scavois_fw-fr que_fw-fr nôtre_fw-fr langue_n naturelle_fw-fr imprime_fw-la tonjours_fw-fr dans_fw-fr nos_fw-la esprits_fw-fr des_fw-fr notion_n plus_fw-fr pures_fw-fr et_fw-fr plus_fw-la vives_fw-la je_fw-fr lûs_fw-fr la_fw-fr version_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr bible_n faite_fw-fr par_fw-fr les_fw-fr docteurs_fw-fr de_fw-fr louvain_n et_fw-la parceque_fw-la j'entendois_n dire_fw-fr tous_fw-fr jes_fw-fr jours_fw-fr à _fw-fr ceux_fw-fr avec_fw-fr qui_fw-fr je_fw-fr conversois_fw-fr que_fw-fr la_fw-fr bible_n estoit_fw-fr un_fw-fr livre_fw-fr obscur_v dont_fw-fr la_fw-fr plûpart_fw-fr des_fw-fr version_n avoient_fw-fr esté_fw-fr corrompües_fw-fr par_fw-fr les_fw-fr heretic_n je_fw-fr lûs_fw-fr le_fw-fr nouveau_fw-fr testament_n dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr langue_n dans_fw-fr laquelle_fw-fr tout_fw-fr le_fw-fr monde_fw-fr tombe_fw-fr d'accord_n qu'il_fw-fr a_fw-fr esté_fw-fr premierement_n escrit_fw-fr et_fw-fr pour_fw-fr l'ancient_a testament_n je_fw-fr conferay_fw-fr presque_fw-fr tous_fw-fr les_fw-fr passage_n que_fw-la l'on_n dit_fw-fr avoir_fw-fr esté_fw-fr corrompües_fw-fr par_fw-fr ceux_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr reformée_fw-fr avec_fw-fr la_fw-fr version_n des_fw-fr septante_fw-la qui_fw-la i_o paroissoit_fw-fr horse_n de_fw-fr soupçon_fw-fr d'avoir_fw-fr esté_fw-fr corrompüe_fw-fr puisqu'elle_fw-fr fut_fw-fr faite_fw-fr environ_fw-fr 272_o ans_fw-fr avant_fw-fr la_fw-fr venüe_fw-fr de_fw-fr jesus_n christ_n mon_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr que_fw-fr les_fw-fr moyens_fw-fr dont_fw-fr vous_fw-fr vous_fw-fr servez_fw-fr pour_fw-fr operer_fw-la des_fw-fr miracle_n sont_fw-fr admirables_fw-fr qui_fw-fr m'auroit_fw-fr dit_fw-fr en_fw-fr ce_fw-fr temps-la_a ha_o vous_fw-fr estes_fw-fr dans_fw-fr l'erreur_fw-fr et_fw-fr toute_fw-fr cette_fw-fr estude_n de_fw-fr l'escriture_n sainte_n à _fw-fr la_fw-fr quelle_fw-fr la_fw-fr providence_n permet_n que_fw-fr vous_fw-fr vous_fw-fr appliquiez_fw-fr avec_fw-fr tant_fw-fr d'assiduité_fw-fr sont_fw-fr les_fw-fr operation_n miraculeuse_v du_fw-fr doit_n de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr qui_fw-fr commance_n de_fw-fr vous_fw-fr disposer_n à _fw-fr uôtre_fw-fr conversion_n helas_n on_o m'auroit_fw-fr bien_fw-fr surpris_fw-fr cepandant_n il_fw-fr n'est_fw-fr rien_fw-fr de_fw-fr plus_fw-fr uray_fw-fr que_fw-fr tout_fw-fr cela_fw-fr servoit_fw-fr à _fw-fr ma_fw-fr conveersion_n car_fw-fr enfin_fw-fr si_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr m'avoit_fw-fr laissé_fw-fr dans_fw-fr une_fw-fr entiere_fw-fr ignorance_n des_fw-fr langues_n propres_fw-fr à _fw-fr l'escriture_n sainte_n j'aurois_fw-fr eu_fw-fr quelque_fw-fr raison_n ou_fw-fr du_fw-fr moins_fw-fr quelque_fw-fr pretexte_n de_fw-fr douter_fw-fr 2._o ch._n 1._o §._o 2._o que_fw-fr les_fw-fr pasage_n
metaphisique_n devoit_fw-fr se_fw-la resoudre_fw-la à _fw-fr la_fw-fr fin_fw-fr à _fw-fr une_fw-fr multitude_n de_fw-fr convenance_n doubt_n on_o ne_fw-fr pouroit_fw-fr jamais_fw-fr rien_fw-fr conclure_n necessairement_n quand_fw-fr même_fw-fr on_o supposeroit_fw-fr veritable_a avec_fw-fr mounseur_fw-fr arnauld_n le_fw-fr principe_fw-la sur_fw-fr lequel_fw-fr il_fw-fr est_fw-fr fondé_v à _fw-fr sçavoir_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr toutes_fw-fr les_fw-fr eglise_n chrestiennes_n sur_fw-fr le_fw-fr point_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr re_fw-mi alité_n toutes_fw-fr les_fw-fr eglise_n chrestiennes_n dit_fw-fr mounseur_fw-fr arnauld_n croyent_n la_fw-fr presence_n reéle_v donc_fw-fr c'estoit_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr parceque_fw-fr dans_fw-fr une_fw-fr matiere_n de_fw-fr si_fw-fr grande_fw-fr consequence_n il_fw-fr est_fw-fr impossible_a qu'il_fw-fr se_fw-fr soit_fw-fr fait_fw-fr un_fw-fr changement_n de_fw-fr doctrine_n cet_fw-fr argument_n trouvoit_fw-fr je_fw-fr ne_fw-fr sçay_fw-fr quelle_fw-fr repugnance_n à _fw-fr entrer_fw-fr dans_fw-fr mon_fw-fr esprit_fw-fr car_fw-fr quoyque_a j'en_v supposasse_n la_fw-fr premiere_fw-la proposition_n veritable_a que_fw-la depuis_fw-fr par_fw-fr la_fw-fr lecture_n des_fw-fr histoires_n et_fw-fr des_fw-fr relation_n des_fw-fr pays_n estranger_n j'ay_fw-fr reconnu_fw-fr estre_fw-fr faux_fw-fr je_fw-fr ne_fw-fr pouvois_fw-fr consentir_fw-fr à _fw-fr la_fw-fr consequence_n parceque_fw-fr la_fw-fr preuve_n ne_v i_o paroissoit_fw-fr pas_fw-fr veritable_a et_fw-la quelque_fw-fr effort_n de_fw-fr rhetoric_n que_fw-fr fit_a mounseur_fw-fr arnaud_n pour_fw-fr expliquer_fw-fr et_fw-fr pour_fw-fr appüyer_fw-fr sa_fw-fr preuve_n je_fw-fr conçevois_fw-fr pourtant_fw-fr toûjours_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr estoit_fw-fr fort_fw-fr possible_a qu'il_fw-fr se_fw-fr fût_fw-fr fait_fw-fr un_fw-fr changement_n sur_fw-fr la_fw-fr doctrine_n de_fw-fr l'eucharistie_a aussi_fw-fr bien_fw-fr que_fw-fr sur_fw-fr d'autres_fw-fr article_n où_fw-fr tout_fw-fr le_fw-fr monde_n tombe_fw-fr d'accord_n qu'il_fw-fr s'est_fw-fr fait_fw-fr de_fw-fr grands_fw-fr changements_n au_n contraire_fw-fr la_fw-fr réponse_fw-fr du_fw-fr minister_fw-fr claude_n me_fw-it paroissoit_fw-fr tres_fw-fr raisonnable_a ce_fw-fr changement_n s'est_fw-fr fait_fw-fr dit_fw-fr il_fw-fr donc_fw-fr il_fw-fr n'est_fw-fr pas_fw-fr impossible_a et_fw-la sa_fw-fr preuve_n l'on_v croit_fw-fr dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a la_n presence_n reéle_v or_o oâ_n ne_fw-fr la_fw-fr croyoit_fw-fr point_fw-fr dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a egliseâ_n donc_fw-fr il_fw-fr s'est_fw-fr fait_fw-fr un_fw-fr changement_n et_fw-fr eâ_n suitte_v il_fw-fr prouve_fw-fr dans_fw-fr son_fw-fr livre_fw-fr par_fw-fr leâ_n authoritez_fw-fr de_fw-fr ceux_fw-fr qui_fw-fr vivoient_fw-fr de_fw-fr ãâã_d temps_fw-fr la_fw-fr que_fw-fr veritablement_n dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr on_o ne_fw-fr croyoit_fw-fr point_fw-fr la_fw-fr presence_n reéle_v de_fw-fr jesus_n christ_n au_fw-fr sacrementâ_n cet_fw-fr argument_n i_o paroissoit_fw-fr bien_fw-fr nature_o sincere_a et_fw-la veritable_a les_fw-fr preuves_fw-mi m'eâ_n paroissoint_fw-fr faciles_fw-la et_fw-fr bien_fw-fr fondées_fw-fr aâ_n lieu_fw-fr que_fw-fr celuy_fw-fr de_fw-fr mr._n arnauld_n i_o paroissoit_fw-fr rude_a difficile_fw-la et_fw-fr ambarrassé_fw-fr ses_fw-fr preves_n ne_fw-mi i_o sembloient_fw-fr fondées_fw-fr que_fw-fr sur_fw-fr des_fw-fr supposition_n en_fw-fr l'air_fw-fr et_fw-fr ne_fw-fr pouvoient_fw-fr se_fw-fr reduire_n à _fw-fr la_fw-fr fin_fw-fr qu'à _fw-fr des_fw-fr convenance_n qui_fw-fr ne_fw-fr prouvent_fw-fr rien_fw-fr necessairement_n toutes_fw-fr ces_fw-fr raisin_n i_o firent_a porter_n judgement_n en_fw-fr faveur_fw-fr de_fw-fr mounseur_fw-fr claude_n contre_fw-fr l'argument_n de_fw-fr mr._n arnauld_n mais_n quoyque_a je_fw-fr fusse_fw-fr persuadé_v que_fw-fr son_fw-fr argument_n ne_o fust_v pas_fw-fr bon_fw-fr je_fw-fr ne_fw-fr voulois_fw-fr pourtant_fw-fr pas_fw-fr avoüer_fw-fr que_fw-fr la_fw-fr cause_n qu'il_fw-fr soûtenoit_fw-fr ne_fw-fr fût_fw-fr pas_fw-fr la_fw-fr verité_fw-fr il_fw-fr se_fw-fr peut_fw-fr fair_a disois_fw-fr je_fw-fr que_fw-fr mr._n arnauld_n se_fw-fr soit_fw-fr un_fw-fr peu_fw-fr trop_fw-fr avancé_fw-la sur_fw-fr une_fw-fr preuve_n faux_fw-fr et_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr s'est_fw-fr apres_fw-fr cela_fw-fr trovué_fw-fr engagé_fw-fr d'honneur_fw-fr à _fw-fr la_fw-fr soûtenir_fw-fr mais_fw-fr enfin_fw-fr mr._n arnauld_n n'est_fw-fr qu'un_fw-fr particulier_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a pouroit_fw-fr desavoüer_fw-fr son_fw-fr argument_n et_fw-fr ne_fw-fr pas_fw-fr prendre_fw-fr son_fw-fr party_n ainsi_fw-fr les_fw-fr raisin_n de_fw-fr mr._n arnauld_n estant_fw-fr fauss_n il_fw-fr ne_fw-fr s'en_fw-fr suit_n pas_fw-fr que_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr son_fw-fr eglise_fw-fr soit_fw-fr faux_fw-fr puisqu'elle_fw-fr peut_fw-fr avoir_fw-fr d'autres_fw-fr preuves_fw-mi et_fw-fr d'autres_fw-fr raisin_n cela_fw-fr fuâ_n cause_n que_fw-fr je_fw-fr pris_fw-fr la_fw-fr resolution_n d'examiner_n la_o question_n de_fw-fr l'eucharistie_a pour_fw-fr mon_fw-fr eclaircissement_fw-fr propre_fw-fr et_fw-fr voicy_fw-fr à _fw-fr peâ_n prés_fw-fr la_fw-fr method_n que_fw-fr j'y_fw-fr observay_n division_n des_fw-fr erreur_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr de_fw-fr rome_n touchant_a l'eucharistie_a je_fw-fr supposé_fw-fr d'abord_fw-fr comme_fw-fr un_fw-fr principe_n que_fw-fr je_fw-fr passois_fw-fr sans_fw-fr examiner_n que_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr devoit_fw-fr estre_fw-fr nôtre_fw-fr regle_n puisque_fw-fr cette_fw-fr eglise_fw-fr plus_fw-fr proche_n des_fw-fr apôtres_fw-fr de_fw-fr jesus_n christ_n avoit_fw-fr l'avantage_fw-fr de_fw-fr puiser_n les_fw-fr veritez_fw-fr dans_fw-fr leur_fw-fr propres_fw-fr source_n cela_fw-fr supposé_fw-fr je_fw-fr divisois_fw-fr tout_fw-fr ceque_fw-la l'on_n peut_fw-fr dire_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eucharistie_a en_fw-fr deux_fw-fr party_n la_fw-fr premiere_fw-la la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr ce_fw-fr mystere_fw-la la_fw-fr second_o la_o form_n de_fw-fr l'administrer_fw-fr puis_fw-fr donc_fw-fr disois-je_a que_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n du_fw-fr concile_v de_fw-fr trente_n sur_fw-fr l'eucharistie_a ne_fw-fr se_fw-fr trouve_fw-fr point_fw-fr dans_fw-fr l'escriture_n sainte_fw-fr puisque_fw-fr la_fw-fr form_n d'administrer_fw-fr le_fw-fr sacrament_n dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a est_fw-la si_fw-la diferente_a de_fw-fr celle_fw-fr qui_fw-fr est_fw-fr rapportée_n par_fw-fr st._n paul_n et_fw-fr par_fw-fr les_fw-fr evangelistes_n il_fw-fr faut_fw-fr examiner_n si_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a n'auroit_fw-fr point_fw-fr esté_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr et_fw-fr si_fw-fr la_fw-fr messe_n qui_fw-fr est_fw-fr la_fw-fr form_n d'administrer_fw-fr le_fw-fr sacrament_n n'auroit_fw-fr point_fw-fr esté_fw-fr instituée_fw-fr par_fw-fr les_fw-fr premiers_fw-fr christian_o cette_fw-fr maniere_n de_fw-mi proceder_fw-mi i_o paroissoit_fw-fr assez_fw-fr just_o et_fw-fr comme_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a sur_fw-fr l'eucharistie_a se_fw-mi divise_v en_fw-fr trois_fw-fr chef_n premierement_n elle_fw-fr croit_fw-fr la_fw-fr presence_n reéle_v et_fw-fr la_fw-fr transubstantiation_n secondement_fw-fr elle_fw-fr croit_fw-fr que_fw-fr la_fw-fr mess_n est_fw-fr un_fw-fr sacrifice_n propitiatoire_n pour_fw-fr les_fw-fr vivant_n et_fw-fr pour_fw-fr les_fw-fr morts_fw-fr troisiemement_fw-fr elle_fw-fr croit_fw-fr que_fw-fr la_fw-fr messe_n telle_fw-fr qu'elle_fw-fr se_fw-fr trouve_fw-fr presentement_fw-fr dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr messel_n est_fw-fr l'ancienne_fw-fr form_n d'administrer_fw-fr l'eucharistie_a j'examinay_n toutes_fw-fr ces_fw-fr question_n 1._o ch._n 2._o §._o 1._o et_fw-fr je_fw-fr trouvay_n 1._o que_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr rome_n touchant_a la_fw-fr reéle_v presence_n et_fw-fr la_fw-fr transubstantiation_n est_fw-fr une_fw-fr doctrine_n nouvelle_n dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr 2._o que_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n du_fw-fr sacrifice_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr messe_n est_fw-fr contraire_fw-fr à _fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n des_fw-fr premiers_fw-fr christian_o 3._o que_fw-fr la_fw-fr form_n de_fw-fr celebrer_fw-la l'eucharistie_a est_fw-fr tout_fw-fr à _fw-fr fait_fw-fr different_a et_fw-fr bien_fw-fr opposée_fw-fr à _fw-fr celle_fw-fr dont_fw-fr on_o se_fw-fr servoit_fw-fr dans_fw-fr les_fw-fr premiers_fw-fr siecles_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr d'où_fw-fr je_fw-fr conclûs_fw-fr que_fw-fr les_fw-fr article_n de_fw-fr foy_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr de_fw-fr rome_n ne_fw-fr sont_fw-fr point_fw-fr fondés_fw-fr sur_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr sect_n i._n la_o creance_n de_fw-fr rome_n touchant_a la_fw-fr presence_n reéle_v et_fw-fr la_fw-fr transubstantiation_n est_fw-fr une_fw-fr doctrine_n nouvelle_fw-fr dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr i._o premiere_n preuve_n tirée_n des_fw-fr argument_n dont_fw-fr les_fw-fr peres_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr se_fw-fr sont_fw-fr seruis_fw-la en_fw-fr disputant_n contre_fw-fr les_fw-fr idolatre_v plusieurs_fw-fr raisons_fw-fr me_fw-it persuaderent_fw-la que_fw-la dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr on_o ne_fw-fr croyoit_fw-fr ny_fw-fr la_fw-fr presence_n reéle_v ny_fw-fr la_fw-fr transubstantiation_n come_v on_o la_fw-fr croit_fw-fr dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr de_fw-fr rome_n la_fw-fr premiere_fw-la raison_n et_fw-fr celle_fw-fr qui_fw-fr i_o persuadoit_fw-fr davantage_fw-fr c'estoit_fw-fr les_fw-fr argument_n dont_fw-fr se_fw-fr servoient_fw-fr les_fw-fr premiers_fw-fr chrestiens_fw-la pour_fw-fr disputer_fw-fr contre_fw-fr les_fw-fr idolatre_v et_fw-fr leur_fw-fr prouver_fw-fr que_fw-fr leur_fw-fr idol_n n'estoient_fw-fr pas_fw-fr des_fw-fr dieux_fw-fr vos_fw-fr idol_n ne_fw-fr sont_fw-fr point_fw-fr des_fw-fr divinités_fw-fr leur_fw-fr disoient_fw-fr ces_fw-fr peres_n si_fw-fr elles_fw-fr tombent_n à _fw-fr terre_fw-fr elles_fw-fr ne_fw-fr sçauroient_fw-fr se_fw-fr relever_fw-fr d'elles_fw-fr mêmes_fw-fr vos_fw-fr dieux_fw-fr ont_fw-fr pour_fw-fr cela_fw-fr besoin_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'assistance_n des_fw-fr hommes_fw-fr elles_fw-fr ne_fw-fr sçauroient_fw-fr ovurir_fw-fr les_fw-fr yeux_fw-fr ny_fw-fr se_fw-fr remüer_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr place_n où_fw-fr on_o les_fw-fr met_z ny_fw-fr donner_fw-fr le_fw-fr moindre_fw-fr sign_n de_fw-fr respiration_n on_z les_fw-fr voit_fw-fr sujete_n à _fw-fr la_fw-fr roüille_fw-fr aux_fw-fr vers_fw-la et_fw-fr à _fw-fr la_fw-fr
le_fw-fr sacrament_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr cene_z le_fw-fr pain_n et_fw-fr le_fw-fr vin_fw-fr pour_fw-fr image_n et_fw-fr figure_n de_fw-fr son_fw-fr corpse_n et_fw-fr de_fw-fr son_fw-fr sang._n et_fw-la parlant_fw-fr du_fw-fr pain_n de_fw-fr l'eucharistie_a voila_fw-fr disoient_fw-fr ces_fw-fr peres_n l'image_n de_fw-fr son_fw-fr corpse_n vivifiant_a et_fw-fr un_fw-fr peu_fw-fr aprés_fw-fr le_fw-fr seigneur_fw-fr disent_fw-fr ils_fw-fr nous_fw-fr a_fw-fr commandé_v de_fw-fr mettre_fw-fr sur_fw-fr la_fw-fr table_n cette_fw-fr image_n particulierement_n choisie_n c'est_fw-fr à _fw-fr sçavoir_fw-fr la_fw-fr substance_n du_fw-fr pain_n de_fw-fr peur_fw-fr que_fw-fr l'idolatrie_n ne_fw-la se_fw-la glissa_fw-la parmy_a les_fw-fr christian_o s'il_fw-fr avoit_fw-fr esté_fw-fr representé_fw-fr sous_fw-fr la_fw-fr figure_n d'un_fw-fr homme_fw-fr iv_o quatriéme_v preuve_n tirée_a de_fw-fr la_fw-fr nouvauté_fw-fr de_fw-fr cette_fw-fr doctrine_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr transubstantiation_n toutes_fw-fr ces_fw-fr raisin_n i_n persuaderent_fw-la que_fw-fr non_fw-fr seulement_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr presence_n reéle_v et_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr transubstantiation_n n'estoit_fw-fr pas_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr mais_fw-fr encore_fw-fr que_fw-fr c'estoient_fw-fr des_fw-fr article_n de_fw-fr foy_fw-fr nouvellement_fw-fr inventés_fw-fr et_fw-fr qui_fw-fr n'estoient_fw-fr guere_fw-fr plus_fw-fr ancient_n que_fw-fr le_fw-fr commancement_n du_fw-fr 13._o siecle_n quand_fw-fr le_fw-fr pape_n innocent_a 3._o au_o concile_v de_fw-fr latran_n en_fw-fr l'année_fw-fr 1214._o fit_a passer_n parmy_a les_fw-fr article_n de_fw-fr foy_fw-fr l'article_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr transubstantiation_n puisque_fw-fr nous_fw-fr voyons_fw-fr que_fw-fr sur_fw-fr la_fw-fr fin_fw-fr du_fw-fr 9_o siecle_n envivon_n l'an_v 874_o bertram_n ou_fw-fr jean_n scot_n l'un_fw-fr des_fw-fr plus_fw-fr sçavant_n personages_z de_fw-mi ce_fw-fr temps_fw-fr la_fw-fr escrivit_fw-la un_fw-fr livre_fw-fr sur_fw-fr le_fw-fr suiet_a de_fw-fr l'eucharistie_a par_fw-fr le_fw-fr commandment_n de_fw-fr charles_n le_fw-fr chauve_n dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr quel_fw-fr il_fw-fr soûtient_a clairement_n la_o creance_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr reformée_fw-fr puisque_fw-fr nous_fw-fr trouvons_fw-fr dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr bibliotheque_fw-fr des_fw-fr peres_n au_o tome_n des_fw-fr divins_n office_n une_fw-fr epître_fw-fr de_fw-fr charles_n magne_n à _fw-fr son_fw-fr precepteur_fw-fr alcuinus_fw-la dans_fw-fr laquelle_fw-fr on_o lit_fw-fr encor_fw-fr ces_fw-fr paroles_fw-fr jesus_n christ_n soupant_fw-la avec_fw-fr ses_fw-fr disciple_n rompit_n le_v pain_n et_fw-fr leur_fw-fr donna_fw-fr semblablement_n la_fw-fr coupe_fw-fr en_fw-fr figure_n de_fw-fr son_fw-fr corpse_n et_fw-fr de_fw-fr son_fw-fr sang._n et_fw-fr enfin_fw-fr puisâ_n que_fw-fr mme_fw-fr dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr canon_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr mess_n au_fw-fr lieu_fw-fr de_fw-fr ces_fw-fr paroles_fw-fr que_fw-fr l'on_n y_fw-fr lit_fw-fr presentement_fw-fr ut_fw-la nobis_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la fiat_fw-la dilectissimi_fw-la filii_fw-la tui_fw-la etc._n etc._n oâ_n y_fw-fr lisoit_fw-fr celles_fw-fr qui_fw-fr se_fw-fr trouvent_fw-fr au_o 5._o chaâ_n du_fw-fr 4_o livre_fw-fr des_fw-fr sacrement_n attribué_fw-fr st._n ambroise_n fac_n nobis_fw-la hanc_fw-la oblation_n nem_fw-la ascriptam_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la figuââ_n corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la domini_fw-la nostââ_n jesus_n christi_fw-la tout_fw-fr cela_fw-fr i_o fit_a connoistre_fw-fr que_fw-fr poââ_n establir_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr realité_n et_fw-fr de_fw-fr lââ_n transubstantiation_n dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a il_fw-fr avoit_fw-fr falu_fw-fr non_fw-fr seulement_fw-fr corrompre_fw-it les_fw-fr escriture_n et_fw-fr leur_fw-fr donner_fw-fr unâ_n sens_fw-fr absurd_a impossible_a et_fw-la ridicule_fw-la maiâ_n encor_fw-fr s'opposer_n à _fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr toute_fw-fr l'antiquité_fw-fr corrompre_fw-it les_fw-fr escrit_n des_fw-fr saint_n peres_n 2._o ch._n 2._o §._o 2._o et_fw-fr même_fw-fr le_fw-fr canon_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr messe_n laquelle_fw-fr avant_fw-fr que_fw-fr cette_fw-fr corruption_n épouvantable_a se_fw-mi fut_fw-fr glissée_fw-fr dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr n'estoit_fw-fr qu'un_fw-fr certain_a nombre_fw-fr de_fw-fr prieres_n assez_fw-fr devote_v et_fw-fr bien_fw-fr raisonnable_v cette_fw-fr pensée_fw-fr commança_fw-fr à _fw-fr i_o fair_a avoir_fw-fr deâ_n l'horreur_fw-fr pour_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr de_fw-fr rome_n et_fw-fr i_o méfier_n de_fw-fr toute_fw-fr sa_fw-fr doctrine_n sect_n ii_o ce_fw-fr que_fw-fr l'on_n ensign_n dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a du_fw-fr sacrifice_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr mess_n est_fw-fr une_fw-fr doctrine_n contraire_fw-fr à _fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr i._n en_fw-fr quel_fw-fr sens_fw-fr il_fw-fr est_fw-fr veritable_a de_fw-fr dire_fw-fr que_fw-fr le_fw-fr st._n sacrament_n est_fw-fr uâ_n sacrifice_n je_fw-fr decovuris_fw-fr bientôt_fw-fr aprés_fw-fr la_fw-fr suitte_v eââ_n le_fw-fr progrés_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'erreur_fw-fr et_fw-fr la_fw-fr fausseté_fw-fr dââ_n cet_fw-fr autre_fw-fr article_n du_fw-fr concile_v de_fw-fr trenteâ_n que_fw-fr la_fw-fr messe_n est_fw-fr un_fw-fr sacrifice_n propitiatoire_n pour_fw-fr les_fw-fr vivant_n et_fw-fr pour_fw-fr les_fw-fr morts_fw-fr afin_fw-fr d'éclaircir_fw-fr cette_fw-fr question_n il_fw-fr faut_fw-fr supposer_n avec_fw-fr l'ecriture_n que_fw-fr les_fw-fr prieres_n les_fw-fr aumônes_fw-la les_fw-fr action_n de_fw-fr grace_n que_fw-fr nous_fw-fr rendon_n à _fw-fr dieu_fw-fr et_fw-fr la_fw-fr rest_n de_fw-fr nos_fw-la bonnes_fw-fr qevures_fw-fr sont_fw-fr des_fw-fr sa_n crifice_n eucharistique_n c'esâainsi_fw-fr que_fw-fr le_fw-fr prephete_n osée_fw-fr appelle_fw-fr les_fw-fr action_n de_fw-fr grace_n qu'il_fw-fr rendoit_fw-fr à _fw-fr dieu_fw-fr les_fw-fr victime_n de_fw-fr se_fw-la leures_n c'est_fw-fr ainsi_fw-fr que_fw-fr le_fw-fr prophet_n daviâ_n s'addresse_v à _fw-fr dieu_fw-fr mon_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr dit_fw-fr ce_fw-fr pray_fw-mi phete_n que_fw-fr mes_fw-fr prieres_n soient_fw-fr exposée_fw-fr devant_fw-fr vous_fw-fr comme_fw-fr un_fw-fr parsum_fw-la eâ_n que_fw-fr l'elevation_n de_fw-fr mes_fw-fr mains_fw-fr soit_fw-fr devant_fw-fr uôtre_fw-fr majesté_fw-fr comme_fw-fr un_fw-fr sacrâfice_n du_fw-fr soir_fw-fr ainsi_fw-fr st._n paul_n à _fw-fr l'imitâtion_n de_fw-fr david_n dit_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr faut_fw-fr offrir_fw-fr ãâã_d dieu_fw-fr un_fw-fr sacrifice_n de_fw-fr loüange_n c'est_fw-mi a_o dire_a le_fw-fr fruit_n des_fw-fr leures_n de_fw-fr ceux_fw-fr quconfessent_n son_fw-fr nom._n c'est_fw-fr dans_fw-fr ce_fw-fr sensâ_n que_fw-fr tous_fw-fr les_fw-fr chrestiens_fw-la sont_fw-fr appellez_fw-fr dam_n l'escriture_n sainte_n des_fw-fr sacrificateurs_fw-fr vous_fw-fr estes_fw-fr dit_fw-fr st._n pierre_n la_fw-fr generation_n eleüe_n la_fw-fr sacrificature_fw-la royal_a la_o nation_n sainte_n le_fw-fr peuple_n acquis_fw-la afin_fw-fr que_fw-fr vous_fw-fr annonciés_fw-fr les_fw-fr vertus_fw-fr de_fw-fr celuy_fw-fr qui_fw-fr vous_fw-fr a_fw-fr appellés_fw-fr des_fw-fr tenebres_fw-fr à _fw-fr sa_fw-fr merveilleuse_fw-fr lumiere_n et_fw-fr st._n jean_n dans_fw-fr sei_fw-it revelation_n à _fw-fr celuy_fw-fr qui_fw-fr nous_fw-fr a_fw-fr aymé_fw-fr et_fw-fr nous_fw-fr a_fw-fr laué_fw-fr de_fw-fr nos_fw-la pechéz_fw-fr dans_fw-fr son_fw-fr sang_n et_fw-fr nous_fw-fr a_fw-fr fait_fw-fr royaume_n et_fw-fr sacrificateurs_fw-fr à _fw-fr dieu_fw-fr et_fw-fr à _fw-fr son_fw-fr pere_fw-fr à _fw-fr luy_fw-fr soit_fw-fr gloire_fw-fr et_fw-fr force_n és_fw-fr siecles_n des_fw-fr siecles_n amen_n par_fw-fr où_fw-fr vous_fw-fr voyez_fw-fr que_fw-fr les_fw-fr sacrifice_n des_fw-fr chrestiens_fw-la sont_fw-fr des_fw-fr prieres_n des_fw-fr aumônes_fw-la des_fw-fr action_n de_fw-fr grace_n et_fw-fr de_fw-fr bonnes_fw-fr oeures_n et_fw-fr que_fw-fr tous_fw-fr les_fw-fr chrestiens_fw-la sont_fw-fr eux_fw-fr méme_n les_fw-fr sacrificateurs_fw-fr qui_fw-fr les_fw-fr offrent_a à _fw-fr dieu_fw-fr dans_fw-fr ce_fw-fr sens_fw-fr je_fw-fr conçevois_fw-fr bien_fw-fr que_fw-fr le_fw-fr sacrament_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr cene_z estant_fw-fr la_fw-fr commems_fw-fr ration_n dela_n mort_fw-fr du_fw-fr fils_n de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr estoit_fw-fr uâ_n sacrifice_n d'action_n the_o grace_n de_fw-fr loüange_n de_fw-fr reconnoissance_fw-fr et_fw-fr de_fw-fr devoir_n ainsi_fw-fr que_fw-fr jâl'ay_fw-fr du_fw-fr depuis_fw-fr appris_fw-fr plus_fw-fr clairement_n dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr liure_fw-fr de_fw-fr nos_fw-la prieres_n commune_v où_fw-fr immediatement_fw-fr apres_fw-fr avoir_fw-fr reçeu_fw-fr la_fw-fr communion_n nous_fw-fr faisons_fw-fr cette_fw-fr priere_fw-la à _fw-fr dieu_fw-fr seigneur_fw-fr pere_fw-fr celeste_n nous_fw-fr tes_fw-gr tres_fw-fr humble_v serviteurs_fw-fr supplion_n ta_fw-fr bonté_fw-fr parternelle_fw-it d'accepter_n misericordieusement_n se_fw-la sacrifice_n de_fw-fr loüange_n et_fw-fr d'actionsde_v grace_n que_fw-fr nous_fw-fr t'offrons_n et_fw-la quoyque_a nous_fw-fr soyons_fw-fr indignes_fw-la de_fw-fr t'offrir_fw-fr aucun_fw-fr sacrifice_n nous_fw-fr te_fw-fr supplion_n neantmoins_fw-fr d'accepter_n celuy_fw-fr cy_fw-fr comme_fw-fr une_fw-fr marque_n des_fw-fr devoirs_fw-fr et_fw-fr des_fw-fr service_n que_fw-fr nous_fw-fr sommes_fw-fr obligés_fw-fr de_fw-fr rendre_fw-fr à _fw-fr ta_o divine_a majesté_fw-fr et_fw-la dans_fw-fr ce_fw-fr temps_fw-fr la_fw-fr j'embrassou_fw-fr déja_fw-fr tres_fw-fr volontier_n la_fw-fr doctrine_n que_fw-fr j'ay_fw-fr apprise_n depuis_fw-fr dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr liure_fw-fr du_fw-fr sacrifice_n du_fw-fr chrestien_n composé_fw-fr par_fw-fr d._n sim._n patrick_n dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr catechism_n du_fw-fr d._n h._n hammon_n et_fw-fr dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr reponse_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'archevéque_fw-fr cranmer_n à _fw-la l'evéque_fw-la gardener_n c'est_fw-fr à _fw-fr sçavoir_fw-fr que_fw-fr le_fw-fr sacrifice_n propitiatoire_n a_o esté_fw-fr fait_fw-fr par_fw-fr jesus_n christ_n seulement_fw-fr mais_fw-fr que_fw-fr le_fw-fr sacrifia_fw-mi de_fw-fr commemoration_n et_fw-fr d'action_n de_fw-fr grace_n est_fw-fr fait_fw-fr par_fw-fr le_fw-fr minister_fw-fr et_fw-fr par_fw-fr le_fw-fr peuple_n ii_o que_fw-fr le_fw-fr pretendu_fw-fr sacrifice_n propitiatoire_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a est_fw-fr contraire_fw-fr à _fw-fr l'escriture_n la_fw-fr doctrine_n du_fw-fr
escrivains_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a les_fw-fr tiennent_fw-fr pour_fw-fr authentiques_n nous_fw-fr pouvons_fw-fr tres_fw-fr justement_fw-fr nous_fw-fr en_fw-fr servir_fw-fr contre_fw-fr eux_fw-fr et_fw-fr leur_fw-fr fair_a voir_fw-fr que_fw-fr dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr temps_fw-fr que_fw-fr ces_fw-fr liturgy_n ont_fw-fr esté_fw-fr escrite_n la_o maniere_n d'administrer_fw-fr l'eucharistie_a estoit_fw-fr bien_fw-fr different_a de_fw-fr celle_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a ainsi_fw-fr que_fw-fr j'ay_fw-fr fait_fw-fr voir_fw-fr cy_fw-fr dessus_fw-fr cequi_fw-la est_fw-la une_fw-fr preuve_n considerable_a de_fw-mi la_fw-fr nonenuté_fw-fr des_fw-fr erreur_n de_fw-fr cette_fw-fr eglise_fw-fr ii_o l'origine_fw-la de_fw-la toutes_fw-fr les_fw-fr erreur_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a en_fw-fr l'administration_n du_fw-fr sacrament_n mais_n sans_o m'arrester_n plus_fw-fr long-temps_a à _fw-fr toutes_fw-fr ces_fw-fr preuves_fw-mi que_fw-fr l'on_n pouroit_fw-fr appeller_n negative_n qui_fw-la ne_fw-la laissent_fw-la pas_fw-fr d'estre_fw-fr d'un_fw-fr grand_fw-fr poid_v et_fw-fr d'avoir_fw-fr la_fw-fr force_fw-fr d'une_fw-fr demonstration_n dans_fw-fr les_fw-fr question_n dans_fw-fr lesquelles_fw-fr on_o accuse_v un_fw-fr party_n d'avoir_fw-fr innoué_fw-fr il_fw-fr est_fw-fr aisé_fw-fr de_fw-fr montrer_fw-fr des_fw-fr preuves_fw-mi positives_n pour_v fair_a voir_fw-fr la_fw-fr noveauté_fw-fr de_fw-fr ces_fw-fr erreur_n puisque_fw-fr l'on_n sçait_fw-fr assés_fw-fr au_fw-fr just_a le_fw-fr temps_fw-fr auquel_fw-fr elles_fw-fr sont_fw-fr venuës_fw-fr au_fw-fr monde_n et_fw-fr qu'on_n en_fw-fr connoit_fw-fr pour_fw-fr ainsi_fw-fr dire_fw-fr les_fw-fr peres_n et_fw-fr les_fw-fr autheurs_fw-fr 1._o de_fw-fr l'origine_fw-la endue_v retranchement_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr coupe_fw-fr on_o sçait_v par_fw-fr le_fw-fr rapport_n de_fw-fr cassandre_n et_fw-fr des_fw-fr autres_fw-fr auteurs_fw-fr que_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr d'orient_a a_fw-fr toujours_fw-fr donné_fw-fr la_fw-fr communion_n anx_n fidel_n sous_fw-fr les_fw-fr deux_fw-fr espece_n et_fw-la que_fw-la méme_v dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a la_fw-fr coûtume_fw-fr de_fw-fr distribuer_fw-fr aux_fw-fr fidel_n le_fw-fr pain_n et_fw-fr le_fw-fr vin_fw-fr du_fw-fr sacrament_n a_o duré_fw-fr plus_fw-fr de_fw-fr mille_fw-fr ans_fw-fr la_fw-fr coûtume_fw-fr erronee_n the_o retrancher_n la_fw-fr coupe_fw-fr du_fw-fr sang_n de_fw-fr jesus_n christ_n à _fw-fr tous_fw-fr les_fw-fr fidel_n est_fw-fr née_fw-fr au_fw-fr concile_v de_fw-fr constance_n en_fw-fr la_fw-fr session_n 13._o où_fw-fr le_fw-fr concile_v apres_fw-fr avoir_fw-fr reconnu_fw-fr que_fw-fr c'estoit_fw-fr la_fw-fr conûtume_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr de_fw-fr communier_fw-fr sous_fw-fr les_fw-fr deux_fw-fr espece_n establit_fw-la comme_fw-fr une_fw-fr loy_n la_fw-fr conûtume_fw-fr de_fw-fr retrancher_n aux_fw-fr fidel_n une_fw-fr party_n du_fw-fr sacrament_n et_fw-fr declare_v heretic_n ceux_fw-fr qui_fw-fr diront_fw-fr que_fw-fr c'est_fw-fr une_fw-fr erreur_fw-fr de_fw-fr s'opposer_n à _fw-fr la_fw-fr pratique_a de_fw-fr toute_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr à _fw-fr l'exemple_n et_fw-fr à _fw-fr l'institution_n de_fw-fr jesus_n christ_n et_fw-fr au_fw-fr commandment_n qu'il_fw-fr nous_fw-fr a_fw-fr fait_fw-fr de_fw-fr participer_n au_fw-fr calais_n de_fw-fr son_fw-fr sang._n voilà _fw-fr dira_fw-la quelqu'un_fw-fr une_fw-fr doctrine_n assé_v estrange_v qu'un_fw-fr concile_v nonobstant_a la_fw-fr coûtume_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr l'exemple_n de_fw-fr jesus_n christ_n et_fw-fr le_fw-fr commandment_n qu'il_fw-fr en_fw-fr a_fw-fr fait_fw-fr à _fw-fr tous_fw-fr les_fw-fr fidel_n defend_v à _fw-fr tous_fw-fr les_fw-fr prestre_n de_fw-fr donner_fw-fr la_fw-fr communion_n sous_fw-fr les_fw-fr deux_fw-fr espece_n et_fw-la veville_n que_fw-fr ce_fw-fr soit_fw-fr une_fw-fr heresy_n d'obëir_n à _fw-la jesus_fw-la christ_n de_fw-fr se_fw-fr conformer_n à _fw-fr son_fw-fr exemple_n d'observer_n say_v commandment_n et_fw-fr de_fw-fr suiure_fw-fr la_fw-fr pratique_a de_fw-fr tous_fw-fr les_fw-fr saint_n qui_fw-fr ont_fw-fr vescu_fw-la dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr voilà _fw-fr une_fw-fr maniere_n d'agir_fw-it bien_fw-fr rude_a et_fw-fr bien_fw-fr extraordinaire_fw-fr mat_n quelles_fw-fr raisons_fw-fr a_fw-fr eu_fw-fr ce_fw-fr concile_v pour_fw-fr deffendre_fw-fr de_fw-fr communier_fw-fr les_fw-fr fidel_n sous_fw-fr le_fw-fr deux_fw-fr espece_n voulés_fw-fr vous_fw-fr les_fw-fr sçavoir_fw-fr â_o je_fw-fr les_fw-fr apprens_fw-la du_fw-fr chancely_o gerson_n au_fw-fr traitté_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr a_fw-fr fait_fw-fr contr_n haeres_fw-la de_fw-la commun_n sub_fw-la utrà que_fw-la specie_fw-la 1._o lâ_n barbe_n des_fw-fr hommes_fw-fr qui_fw-fr croit_fw-fr fort_fw-fr longuâ_fw-fr sur_fw-fr leur_fw-fr leures_fw-fr 2._o l'aversion_n que_fw-fr l'oâ_n pouroit_fw-fr avoir_fw-fr de_fw-fr boire_fw-fr apres_fw-fr un_fw-fr autre_fw-fr 3._o la_fw-fr dépense_n que_fw-fr l'on_n fait_fw-fr en_fw-fr vin_fw-fr et_fw-fr la_fw-fr difficulté_fw-fr d'en_fw-fr avoir_fw-fr 4._o l'inconve_v nient_a de_fw-mi la_fw-fr gelée_fw-fr en_fw-fr hiver_v 5._o l'importunité_fw-fr des_fw-fr moûches_fw-fr en_fw-fr esté_fw-fr 6._o l'embarras_n que_fw-fr pouroient_fw-fr avoir_fw-fr les_fw-fr diacres_n de_fw-fr distribuer_fw-fr le_fw-fr vin_fw-fr aux_fw-fr fidel_n 7._o le_fw-fr danger_n d'en_fw-fr répandre_fw-fr 8._o l'indignité_fw-fr du_fw-fr peuple_n qui_fw-fr seroit_fw-fr égal_a aux_fw-fr prestre_n en_fw-fr la_fw-fr reception_n du_fw-fr sacrament_n s'il_fw-fr le_fw-fr recevoit_fw-fr sous_fw-fr les_fw-fr deux_fw-fr espece_n voil'a_n les_fw-fr raisin_n de_fw-fr consequence_n qui_fw-fr ont_fw-fr obligé_fw-fr ce_fw-fr concile_v à _fw-fr s'opposer_n si_fw-fr directement_fw-fr à _fw-fr l'institution_n de_fw-fr jesus_n christ_n et_fw-fr à _fw-fr la_fw-fr sainte_n coûtume_fw-fr de_fw-fr toute_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr en_fw-fr verité_fw-fr sont-ce_a la_fw-fr des_fw-fr raisin_n pour_fw-fr abolir_fw-fr un_fw-fr commandment_n si_fw-fr exprés_fw-fr que_fw-fr jesus_fw-la christ_n a_o fait_fw-fr à _fw-fr tous_fw-fr les_fw-fr fidel_n de_fw-fr boire_fw-fr son_fw-fr sang_n sont-ce_a la_fw-fr de_fw-fr nourveaux_fw-fr inconvenient_n qui_fw-fr estant_fw-fr arriués_fw-fr depuis_fw-fr l'institution_n de_fw-fr jesus_n christ_n et_fw-fr depuis_fw-fr le_fw-fr temps_fw-fr des_fw-fr premiers_fw-fr chrestiens_fw-la ont_fw-fr dû_fw-fr alterer_n lââ_n form_n the_o l'institution_n du_fw-fr sacrament_n les_fw-fr hommes_fw-fr n'avoient-ils_a pas_fw-fr dela_n barbe_n dâ_n temps_fw-fr de_fw-fr jesus_n christ_n ne_fw-fr se_fw-fr trouvoit_fw-fr ilâ_n personne_fw-fr du_fw-fr temps_fw-fr des_fw-fr apôtres_fw-fr et_fw-fr jusqu'as_o concile_v de_fw-fr constance_n qui_fw-fr eut_fw-fr aversion_n de_fw-fr boire_fw-fr aprés_fw-fr un_fw-fr autre_fw-fr le_fw-fr vin_fw-fr est_fw-fr il_fw-fr plus_fw-fr cher_fw-fr en_fw-fr france_n en_fw-fr italy_n et_fw-fr en_fw-fr espagne_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr n'estoit_fw-fr du_fw-fr temps_fw-fr des_fw-fr premiers_fw-fr chrestiens_fw-la en_fw-fr eyrie_n et_fw-fr en_fw-fr grece_n à _fw-fr jerusalem_n et_fw-fr a_fw-fr constantinople_n le_fw-fr vin_fw-fr ne_fw-fr geloit_n il_fw-fr point_fw-fr devant_fw-fr le_fw-fr concile_v de_fw-fr constance_n n'est-ce_a que_fw-fr depuis_fw-fr ce_fw-fr temps_fw-fr la_fw-fr que_fw-fr les_fw-fr mouche_n ont_fw-fr importuné_fw-fr le_fw-fr monde_fw-fr en_fw-fr esté_fw-fr l'embarras_n des_fw-fr diacre_n et_fw-fr le_fw-fr danger_n de_fw-fr répandre_fw-fr le_fw-fr vin_fw-fr sont-ce_a des_fw-fr choses_fw-fr que_fw-fr jesus_n christ_n n'ait_fw-fr pas_fw-fr preuües_fw-fr et_fw-fr les_fw-fr prestre_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a sont-ils_a plus_fw-fr éleués_fw-fr en_fw-fr dignité_fw-fr que_fw-fr ne_fw-fr l'estoit_fw-fr jesus_n christ_n et_fw-fr les_fw-fr apôtres_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr faille_fw-fr fair_a entre_fw-fr eux_fw-fr et_fw-fr le_fw-fr peuple_fw-fr une_fw-fr difference_n que_fw-fr l'on_n ne_fw-fr faisoit_fw-fr point_fw-fr entre_fw-fr jesus_n christ_n et_fw-fr les_fw-fr apôtres_fw-fr entre_fw-fr les_fw-fr apôtres_fw-fr et_fw-fr le_fw-fr rest_n des_fw-fr fidel_n 2._o l'origine_fw-la de_fw-la l'adoration_n du_fw-fr sacrament_n pourcequi_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-fr l'adoration_n de_fw-fr l'hostie_a non_fw-fr seulement_fw-fr on_o ne_fw-fr trouve_fw-fr point_fw-fr que_fw-fr jesus_n christ_n les_fw-fr apôtres_fw-fr ny_fw-fr les_fw-fr premiers_fw-fr fidel_n ayent_n adoré_n le_fw-fr sacrament_n non_fw-fr seulement_fw-fr on_o ne_fw-la trove_v point_n dans_fw-fr toutes_fw-fr ces_fw-fr liturgy_n dont_fw-fr j'ay_fw-fr parlé_fw-fr aucun_fw-fr vestige_n de_fw-fr cette_fw-fr adoration_n mais_fw-fr encore_fw-fr on_o sçait_fw-fr tous_fw-fr les_fw-fr degrés_fw-fr par_fw-fr les_fw-fr quell_v cette_fw-fr erreur_fw-fr s'est_fw-fr petiâ_n à _fw-fr petit_fw-fr glissée_fw-fr dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr monde_fw-fr on_o sçait_v que_fw-fr ce_fw-fr fut_fw-fr le_fw-fr pape_n innocent_a iii_o qut_fw-la commanda_fw-la le_fw-fr premier_fw-fr que_fw-fr l'on_n eut_fw-fr des_fw-fr böetes_n dans_fw-fr les_fw-fr eglise_n dans_fw-fr les_fw-fr quelles_fw-fr on_o conservast_o l'hostie_a consacrée_n on_o sçait_v que_fw-fr ce_fw-fr fut_fw-fr le_fw-fr pape_n honnore_n iii_o environ_v l'an_n 1220_o qui_fw-la renouvella_fw-la ce_fw-fr decret_a aveâ_n cette_fw-fr nouvelle_fw-fr clause_n que_fw-fr sur_fw-fr ces_fw-fr böetes_n on_o y_fw-fr escriroit_fw-fr ces_fw-fr paroles_fw-fr hìc_fw-la deum_fw-la adora_fw-la icy_a il_fw-fr faut_fw-fr adorer_n dieu_fw-fr et_fw-fr que_fw-fr ce_fw-fr fut_fw-fr ce_fw-fr même_fw-fr pape_n qui_fw-fr ordonna_n que_fw-fr l'on_n éleveroit_fw-fr l'hostie_a on_o sçait_v que_fw-fr ce_fw-fr fut_fw-fr gregoire_n ix_o qui_fw-la adiouta_fw-la à _fw-fr cette_fw-fr elevation_n le_fw-fr son_n d'une_fw-fr petite_fw-fr cloche_n environ_v l'an_n 1230._o enfin_fw-fr l'on_n sçait_fw-fr que_fw-fr ce_fw-fr fut_fw-fr le_fw-fr pape_n innocent_a iu._n qui_fw-la ordonna_n que_fw-fr l'on_n adoreroit_fw-fr l'hostie_a voilà _fw-fr les_fw-fr degrez_n par_fw-fr lesquels_fw-fr cette_fw-fr erreur_fw-fr s'est_fw-fr establie_o dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a et_fw-fr si_fw-fr vous_fw-fr voulez_fw-fr sçavoir_fw-fr de_fw-fr quelle_fw-fr machine_n on_o s'est_fw-fr servy_a pour_v authoriser_n cette_fw-fr adoration_n vous_fw-fr n'avés_fw-fr qu'à _fw-fr lire_fw-fr platina_n et_fw-fr la_fw-fr bull_fw-mi d'_fw-fr urbain_n
the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o thy_o most_o well-beloved_a son_n etc._n etc._n these_o other_o word_n be_v to_o be_v read_v fac_n nobis_fw-la hanc_fw-la oblationem_fw-la ascriptam_fw-la rationabilem_fw-la acceptabilem_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la figura_fw-la corporis_fw-la et_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesus_n christi_fw-la which_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n all_o that_o make_v i_o know_v that_o to_o establish_v the_o belief_n of_o reality_n with_o transubstantiation_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o have_v be_v need_n not_o only_o to_o corrupt_v the_o scripture_n and_o to_o give_v they_o a_o interpretation_n which_o be_v absurd_a impossible_a and_o ridiculous_a but_o moreover_o to_o withstand_v all_o antiquity_n 2._o ch._n 2._o §._o 2._o to_o pervert_v the_o write_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n even_o to_o suborn_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o afore_o such_o monstrous_a corruption_n be_v slip_v into_o the_o church_n be_v but_o a_o certain_a number_n of_o prayer_n devout_a enough_o and_o very_o reasonable_a those_o horrible_a alteration_n which_o i_o discover_v cause_v i_o to_o look_v with_o detestation_n upon_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o to_o mistrust_v it_o in_o every_o thing_n sect_n ii_o the_o belief_n of_o rome_n about_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n i._o in_o what_o sense_n it_o be_v true_a to_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n a_o little_a while_n after_o i_o discover_v the_o consequence_n and_o the_o progression_n of_o the_o error_n and_o the_o falsehood_n of_o this_o other_o article_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 3._o trent_n sess_n 2.2_o cap._n 1_o 2._o can_n 1_o 2_o 3._o the_o mass_n be_v a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o for_o the_o dead_a to_o explain_v this_o proposition_n we_o must_v suppose_v with_o the_o scripture_n that_o alm_n prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o good_a work_n be_v eucharistick_a sacrifice_n so_o the_o prophet_n 3._o prophet_n cap._n 14._o v._n 3._o hosea_n call_v the_o thanks_o which_o we_o give_v to_o god_n the_o calf_n of_o our_o lip_n so_o david_n direct_v his_o prayer_n unto_o god_n say_v 141.2_o say_v psal_n 141.2_o let_v my_o prayer_n be_v set_v forth_o before_o thou_o as_o incense_v and_o the_o lift_n up_o of_o my_o hand_n as_o the_o evening_n sacrifice_n so_o 13.15_o so_o ad_fw-la heb._n 13.15_o st._n paul_n follow_v after_o david_n say_v let_v we_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n to_o god_n continual_o that_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o our_o lip_n give_v thanks_o to_o the_o name_n it_o be_v in_o that_o sense_n that_o all_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v call_v priest_n you_o be_v 2.9_o be_v 1_o pet._n 2.9_o say_v st._n peter_n awchosen_a generation_n a_o royal_a priesthood_n a_o holy_a nation_n a_o peculiar_a people_n that_o you_o shall_v show_v forth_o the_o parise_n of_o he_o who_o have_v call_v you_o out_o of_o darkness_n into_o his_o marvellous_a light_n and_o st._n john_n in_o his_o 1.6_o his_o rev._n 1.6_o revelation_n he_o have_v make_v we_o king_n and_o priest_n unto_o god_n and_o his_o father_n from_o whence_o you_o see_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o christian_n be_v prayer_n alm_n thanksgiving_n and_o good_a work_n and_o that_o all_o the_o christian_n be_v themselves_o the_o priest_n who_o offer_v they_o to_o god_n in_o that_o sense_n i_o conceive_v very_o well_o that_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n of_o praise_n of_o bind_a duty_n and_o service_n as_o i_o have_v learn_v since_o more_o perfect_o in_o the_o book_n of_o common-prayer_n wherein_o immediate_o after_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a communion_n we_o say_v o_o lord_n and_o heavenly_a father_n we_o thy_o humble_a servant_n entire_o desire_v thy_o fatherly_a goodness_n merceiful_o to_o accept_v this_o our_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n and_o although_o we_o be_v unworthy_a through_o our_o manifold_a sin_n to_o offer_v unto_o thou_o any_o sacrifice_n yet_o we_o beseech_v thou_o to_o accept_v this_o our_o bind_a duty_n and_o service_n and_o then_o i_o do_v embrace_v very_o willing_o the_o doctrine_n i_o take_v since_o out_o of_o d._n d._n h._n hammond_n his_o 4._o his_o lib._n 4._o sect._n 4._o practical_a catechism_n out_o of_o archbishop_n cranmer_n his_o 377._o his_o lib._n 5._o p._n 377._o answer_n to_o bishop_n gardner_n d._n sim._n patrick_n in_o his_o christian_a sacrifice_n viz._n that_o the_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n have_v be_v make_v by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n only_o but_o that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o commemoration_n and_o thanksgiving_n be_v make_v now_o by_o the_o minister_n and_o the_o people_n ii_o the_o pretend_a propitiatory_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n touch_v this_o question_n seem_v to_o i_o very_o harsh_a they_o must_v believe_v that_o christ_n be_v immolate_a every_o day_n in_o the_o sacrament_n that_o a_o roman_a priest_n do_v offer_v the_o son_n of_o god_n unto_o his_o father_n and_o that_o he_o do_v offer_v he_o as_o a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a alas_o say_v i_o be_v not_o that_o to_o wrong_v christ_n priesthood_n to_o give_v he_o so_o many_o fellow-priest_n and_o pettisacrificer_n st._n paul_n 7.23_o paul_n ad_fw-la heb._n cap._n 7.23_o teach_v i_o that_o the_o difference_n betwixt_o moses_n law_n and_o christ_n consist_v in_o this_o that_o in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n there_o be_v need_n to_o keep_v several_a priest_n for_o as_o much_o as_o be_v mortal_a they_o be_v to_o be_v successor_n one_o to_o another_o but_o in_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v the_o priest_n himself_o have_v no_o need_n of_o a_o successor_n since_o he_o be_v live_v for_o ever_o since_o he_o be_v priest_n for_o ever_o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedec_n they_o true_o be_v many_o priest_n say_v he_o because_o they_o be_v not_o suffer_v to_o continue_v by_o reason_n of_o death_n but_o this_o christ_n because_o he_o continue_v for_o ever_o have_v a_o unchangeable_a priesthood_n after_o that_o who_o do_v not_o see_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o say_v that_o her_o priest_n be_v true_a sacrificer_n and_o christ_n successor_n in_o his_o priesthood_n wrong_v christ_n our_o lord_n suppose_v that_o his_o priesthood_n have_v the_o same_o imperfection_n as_o that_o of_o moses_n law_n st._n paul_n teach_v i_o that_o the_o reason_n why_o in_o moses_n law_n they_o reiterated_a their_o sacrifice_n because_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o beast_n which_o be_v offer_v be_v not_o able_a to_o sanctify_v sinner_n the_o law_n 10.1_o ad_fw-la heb._n 10.1_o say_v he_o can_v never_o with_o those_o sacrifice_n which_o they_o offer_v year_n by_o year_n continual_o make_v the_o comer_n thereunto_o perfect_a for_o than_o will_v they_o not_o have_v cease_v to_o be_v offer_v because_o that_o the_o worshipper_n once_o purge_v shall_v have_v have_v no_o more_o conscience_n of_o sin_n what_o then_o do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n mean_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v not_o able_a to_o sanctify_v sinner_n that_o it_o have_v no_o more_o virtue_n than_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o moses_n law_n which_o be_v to_o be_v very_o oft_o reiterated_a do_v that_o church_n intend_v to_o give_v the_o lie_n unto_o the_o apostle_n who_o say_v 10.10_o say_v ad_fw-la heb._n 10.10_o that_o we_o be_v sanctify_v through_o the_o offering_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n once_o for_o all_o and_o that_o 10.14_o that_o ad_fw-la heb._n 10.14_o by_o one_o offering_n he_o have_v perfect_v for_o ever_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v if_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n have_v sanctify_v we_o all_o there_o remain_v nothing_o to_o do_v but_o to_o gain_v to_o ourselves_o by_o faith_n a_o interest_n in_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n what_o do_v then_o signify_v all_o those_o reiterated_a sacrifice_n and_o if_o christ_n priesthood_n be_v everlasting_a christ_n be_v live_n for_o ever_o why_o do_v they_o appoint_v successor_n in_o his_o priesthood_n be_v not_o all_o the_o mass_n of_o rome_n as_o many_o blasphemy_n which_o accuse_v the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n of_o insufficiency_n and_o imperfection_n and_o all_o those_o romish_a pettisacrificer_n erect_v without_o any_o order_n or_o vocation_n of_o god_n be_v not_o they_o the_o usurper_n of_o christ_n priesthood_n iii_o what_o have_v give_v occasion_n to_o that_o error_n and_o the_o degree_n of_o corruption_n which_o bring_v forth_o that_o belief_n to_o discover_v the_o stock_n of_o that_o error_n
presentement_fw-fr sur_fw-fr quoy_fw-fr sont_fw-fr fondez_fw-fr tous_fw-fr ces_fw-fr beaux_fw-fr titter_n d'_fw-fr aînelle_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a doubt_n on_o fait_fw-fr tant_fw-fr de_fw-fr bruit_n &_o tant_fw-fr de_fw-fr vanité_fw-fr §._o 2._o que_fw-fr la_fw-fr multitude_n n'est_fw-fr pas_fw-fr du_fw-fr costé_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a la_fw-fr vanité_fw-fr qu'elle_fw-fr se_fw-fr fait_fw-fr d'avoir_fw-fr la_fw-fr multitue_n de_fw-fr son_fw-fr costé_fw-fr n'est_fw-fr pas_fw-fr mieux_fw-fr fondée_fw-fr que_fw-fr son_fw-fr antiquité_fw-fr á_z la_fw-fr verité_fw-fr si_fw-fr vous_fw-fr demeurés_fw-fr au_fw-fr millieu_n de_fw-fr paris_n ou_fw-fr de_fw-fr rome_n &_o que_fw-fr sans_fw-fr vouloir_fw-fr prendre_fw-fr connoissance_fw-fr de_fw-fr cequi_fw-la se_fw-la fait_fw-fr dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr monde_fw-fr vous_fw-fr vouliés_fw-fr vom_fw-fr en_fw-fr rapporter_n aux_fw-fr predicateurs_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr de_fw-fr rome_n ils_fw-fr vous_fw-fr feront_fw-fr accroire_fw-fr que_fw-fr tout_fw-fr cequ'il_fw-fr y_fw-fr a_fw-fr de_fw-fr chrestiens_fw-la a_fw-fr monde_fw-fr sont_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a &_o qu'il_fw-fr n'y_fw-fr a_fw-fr qu'un_fw-fr tres_fw-fr petit_fw-fr nombre_fw-fr de_fw-fr gens_fw-fr qui_fw-fr ne_fw-fr veulent_a point_fw-fr se_fw-fr soûmettre_fw-fr au_fw-fr pape_n mais_fw-fr pour_fw-fr peu_fw-fr que_fw-fr vous_fw-fr leviés_fw-fr les_fw-fr yeux_fw-fr &_o que_fw-fr vous_fw-fr regardy_n cequi_fw-la se_fw-la pass_v dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr monde_fw-fr vous_fw-fr trouverez_fw-fr que_fw-fr des_fw-fr trois_fw-fr grandes_fw-fr party_n du_fw-fr monde_fw-fr qui_fw-fr ont_fw-fr esté_fw-fr connuës_fw-fr à _fw-fr nos_fw-la peres_n l'asie_n est_fw-fr toute_fw-fr pleine_fw-fr de_fw-fr chrestiens_fw-la qui_fw-fr ont_fw-fr reçu_fw-fr la_fw-fr foy_fw-fr des_fw-fr apôtres_fw-fr &_o qui_fw-fr n'ont_fw-fr jamais_fw-fr reconnu_fw-fr &_o ne_fw-la reconnoissent_fw-la point_fw-fr encore_fw-fr la_fw-fr domination_n du_fw-fr pape_n vous_fw-fr y_fw-fr trouverez_fw-fr les_fw-fr chréstiens_fw-la de_fw-fr la_fw-fr palestine_n soûmis_fw-fr au_fw-fr patriarche_n de_fw-fr jerusalem_n les_fw-fr syrian_o &_o les_fw-fr melchites_n soûmis_fw-fr au_fw-fr patriarche_n d'_fw-fr antioch_n les_fw-fr armeniens_fw-la &_o les_fw-fr georgiens_n soûmis_n à _fw-la leur_fw-fr patriarch_n &_o metropolitains_n qui_fw-la ne_fw-la reconnoissent_fw-la point_fw-fr la_fw-fr domination_n du_fw-fr pape_n vous_fw-fr y_fw-fr verrez_fw-fr les_fw-fr mingreliens_n les_fw-fr circassiens_fw-fr &_o les_fw-fr chrestiens_fw-la de_fw-fr l'asire_n mineure_n soûmis_fw-la au_fw-fr patriarche_n de_fw-fr constantinople_n les_fw-fr jacobite_n &_o les_fw-fr chrestiens_fw-la de_fw-fr st._n thomas_n soûmis_fw-fr à _fw-fr des_fw-fr patriarch_n particuliers_fw-fr &_o non_fw-fr point_fw-fr au_fw-fr pape_n de_fw-fr rome_n sivous_a jettés_fw-fr les_fw-fr yeux_fw-fr sur_fw-fr l'affriqve_fw-la &_o sur_fw-fr ceux_fw-fr de_fw-fr cette_fw-fr party_n du_fw-fr monde_fw-fr qui_fw-fr ont_fw-fr reçu_fw-fr l'evangile_v les_fw-fr egyptiens_fw-la &_o les_fw-fr cophte_n sont_fw-fr sujets_fw-fr au_fw-fr patriarche_n d'_fw-fr alexandrie_n les_fw-fr ethiopiens_fw-la ou_fw-fr abissins_n on_o it_o leur_fw-fr patriarche_n qui_fw-la ne_fw-la reconnoist_fw-mi point_fw-fr encor_fw-fr aujourdhuy_fw-fr la_fw-fr juridiction_n de_fw-fr rome_n quelque_fw-fr conte_z que_fw-fr quellques_fw-fr missionaires_fw-fr du_fw-fr pape_n en_fw-fr ayent_n voulu_fw-fr fair_n &_o pour_fw-fr cette_fw-fr province_n dont_fw-fr les_fw-fr jesuit_n font_n tant_fw-fr de_fw-fr bruit_n &_o qu'il_v appellent_fw-la le_fw-fr royaume_n de_fw-fr congo_n dont_fw-fr ils_fw-fr ont_fw-fr soûmis_fw-fr les_fw-fr gouverneurs_fw-fr à _fw-fr la_fw-fr juridiction_n du_fw-fr pape_n il_fw-fr est_fw-fr aisé_fw-fr de_fw-fr voir_fw-fr que_fw-fr ce_fw-fr n'est_fw-fr qu'une_fw-fr mission_n de_fw-fr jesuiste_fw-fr semblable_a à _fw-fr celles_fw-fr qu'ils_fw-fr ont_fw-fr erigées_fw-fr à _fw-fr goa_n au_fw-fr japon_n dans_fw-fr quelques_fw-fr place_n de_fw-fr l'amerique_a &_o en_fw-fr d'angleterre_fw-fr même_fw-fr au_fw-fr millieu_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr ville_fw-fr capital_fw-it de_fw-it ce_fw-fr royaume_n où_fw-fr ils_fw-fr conservent_fw-la un_fw-fr germe_fw-fr de_fw-fr corruption_n en_fw-fr depit_fw-la de_fw-fr tout_fw-fr cequil_n y_fw-fr a_fw-fr de_fw-fr joy_n &_o the_o magistrate_n enfin_fw-fr dans_fw-fr l'evrope_n même_fw-fr les_fw-fr grecs_n sont_fw-fr soûmis_fw-fr au_fw-fr patriarche_n de_fw-fr constantinople_n les_fw-fr moscovite_n out_o un_o patriarche_n à _fw-fr moscow_n qui_fw-la ne_fw-la dépent_fw-la point_fw-fr du_fw-fr pape_n les_fw-fr chrestiens_fw-la protestant_n &_o reformez_n en_fw-fr d'angleterre_fw-fr en_fw-fr dannemarck_n en_fw-fr suéde_n en_fw-fr hollande_n en_fw-fr allemagne_n &_o en_fw-fr hongrie_a sont_fw-fr sujets_fw-fr à _fw-fr leur_fw-fr euéques_n &_o metropolitains_n lesquels_fw-fr ne_fw-fr sont_fw-fr point_fw-fr soûmis_fw-fr au_fw-fr pape_n &_o l'on_v sçait_fw-fr que_fw-fr dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr bohéme_v dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr pologne_n dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr france_n méme_v &_o dans_fw-fr quelques_fw-fr endroit_n d'stalie_n tout_fw-fr est_fw-fr plein_fw-fr d'eglise_n reformées_fw-fr qui_fw-fr ne_fw-fr reconnoissent_fw-la point_fw-fr la_fw-fr juridiction_n du_fw-fr pape_n de_fw-fr sort_n que_fw-fr cette_fw-fr multitude_n dont_fw-fr on_o fait_fw-fr tant_fw-fr de_fw-fr bruit_n c'est_fw-fr l'_fw-fr espagne_fw-fr une_fw-fr grande_fw-fr party_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr pologne_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr france_n &_o the_o l'stalie_a quelques_fw-fr canton_n des_fw-fr swiss_n party_n des_fw-fr pays-bas_n &_o de_fw-fr l'_fw-fr allemagne_n voilà _fw-fr cette_fw-fr grande_fw-fr multitude_n de_fw-fr peuples_fw-fr dont_fw-fr on_o see_v vaunt_v dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a partur_fw-la montes_fw-la etc._n etc._n qu'est_fw-fr ce_fw-fr que_fw-fr cela_fw-fr à _fw-fr l'égard_fw-fr de_fw-fr tout_fw-fr le_fw-fr monde_fw-fr entier_fw-fr et_fw-la afin_fw-fr que_fw-fr l'on_n ne_fw-fr s'imagine_v pas_fw-fr que_fw-fr ces_fw-fr eglise_n qui_fw-fr ne_fw-fr sont_fw-fr point_fw-fr soûmise_n au_fw-fr pape_n ne_fw-fr sont_fw-fr que_fw-fr de_fw-fr petites_fw-fr eglise_n ceuxz_fw-fr qui_fw-fr voudront_fw-fr se_fw-fr donner_fw-fr la_fw-fr peine_fw-fr de_fw-fr lire_fw-fr les_fw-fr historiens_n trouveront_fw-fr que_fw-fr le_fw-fr seul_fw-fr patriarchat_n de_fw-fr coustantiople_n a_o contenu_fw-fr jusqu'à _fw-fr 80_o euéchez_n &_o prés_fw-fr de_fw-fr 40_o archeuéchez_n l'eglise_fw-fr d'_fw-fr antioch_n 150_o tant_fw-fr euéchez_n qu'_fw-fr archeuéchez_n celle_fw-fr de_fw-fr jerusalem_n plus_fw-fr de_fw-fr 76_o &_o qu'il_fw-fr y_fw-fr a_fw-fr eu_fw-fr dans_fw-fr l'_fw-fr africa_n seule_fw-fr jusqu'à _fw-la 420_o euéchez_n &_o archeuéchez_n qui_fw-fr n'ont_fw-fr jamais_fw-fr suivy_a la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a au_fw-fr rapport_n des_fw-fr historiens_n jugez_fw-fr du_fw-fr rest_n par_fw-fr le_fw-fr denombrement_fw-fr que_fw-fr je_fw-fr viens_fw-fr de_fw-fr vous_fw-fr fair_a §._o 3._o que_fw-fr d'autres_fw-fr eglise_n aussi_fw-fr bien_fw-fr que_fw-fr la_fw-fr roman_a ont_fw-fr leur_fw-fr succession_n d'evéque_fw-fr en_fw-fr euéque_fw-fr depuis_fw-fr les_fw-fr apôtres_fw-fr pour_v cequi_fw-la est_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr succession_n à _fw-fr entendre_fw-fr parler_fw-fr ceux_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a il_fw-fr semble_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr n'y_fw-fr ait_fw-fr que_fw-fr dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr de_fw-fr rome_n que_fw-fr les_fw-fr euéques_fw-fr se_fw-fr soient_fw-fr succedés_fw-fr les_fw-fr uns_fw-fr aux_fw-fr autres_fw-fr depuis_fw-fr le_fw-fr commancement_n du_fw-fr christianisme_n &_o vous_fw-fr diriez_fw-fr qu'ils_fw-fr veulent_a fair_a croire_fw-fr au_fw-fr monde_fw-fr que_fw-fr les_fw-fr euéques_fw-fr qui_fw-fr ne_fw-fr sont_fw-fr point_fw-fr de_fw-fr leur_fw-fr communion_n n'ont_fw-fr ny_fw-fr vocation_n nigh_o titter_v ny_fw-fr ordination_n nigh_o poar_v consequent_a aucun_fw-fr droit_n dans_fw-fr les_fw-fr fonction_n ecclesiastiques_n dans_fw-fr l'administration_n des_fw-fr sacrement_n &_o la_fw-fr predication_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr paole_n de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr mais_n il_fw-fr ne_fw-fr faut_fw-fr qu'ouvir_fw-fr les_fw-fr yeux_fw-fr &_o lire_fw-fr nicephore_n cedrenus_n &_o les_fw-fr autres_fw-fr historiens_n &_o vous_fw-fr trouverez_fw-fr dans_fw-fr des_fw-fr eglise_n qui_fw-fr n'ont_fw-fr jamais_fw-fr esté_fw-fr soûmise_n au_fw-fr pape_n &_o qui_fw-fr ont_fw-fr toujours_fw-fr conserué_fw-fr la_fw-fr pureté_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr parole_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr des_fw-fr list_n d'evéques_n &_o the_o patriarch_n qui_fw-la se_fw-la sont_fw-fr succedez_fw-fr les_fw-fr uns_fw-fr aux_fw-fr autres_fw-fr depuis_fw-fr les_fw-fr apôtres_fw-fr en_fw-fr jerusalem_n où_fw-fr jesus_n christ_n nôtre_fw-fr seigneur_fw-fr fils_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr le_fw-fr saint_n des_fw-fr saint_n a_fw-fr commancé_fw-la la_fw-fr fonction_n d'evéque_fw-fr eternel_n qu'il_fw-fr continüera_fw-fr d'exercer_n pendant_fw-fr toute_fw-fr l'eternité_fw-fr st._n jaques_n fut_fw-fr le_fw-fr premier_fw-fr euéque_fw-fr en_fw-fr suitte_v simon_n cleophas_n &_o puis_fw-fr justus_n le_fw-fr juif_n etc._n etc._n &_o ainsi_fw-fr successivement_n d'evéque_fw-fr en_fw-fr euéque_fw-fr de_fw-fr patriarche_n en_fw-fr patriarche_n jusqu'à _fw-fr germanus_n &_o theophanes_n qui_fw-fr de_fw-fr nos_fw-la jours_fw-fr à _fw-fr gouverné_fw-fr cette_fw-fr eglise_fw-fr en_fw-fr quality_n de_fw-fr patriarche_n dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr d'_fw-fr antioch_n st._n pierre_n fut_fw-fr le_fw-fr premier_fw-fr euéque_fw-fr qui_fw-fr eut_fw-fr pour_fw-fr legitime_fw-la successeur_fw-fr evodius_n &_o puis_fw-fr ignace_n puis_fw-fr hero_n puis_fw-fr cornelius_n &_o les_fw-fr autres_fw-fr successivement_n lesquels_fw-fr ont_fw-fr sibien_fw-fr conserué_fw-fr la_fw-fr doctrine_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr avec_fw-fr la_fw-fr succession_n legitime_fw-la de_fw-fr st._n pierre_n que_fw-fr celuy_fw-fr de_fw-fr ces_fw-fr euéques_fw-fr quivivoit_fw-fr environ_fw-fr l'an_n 1237_o s'unit_v avec_fw-fr le_fw-fr patriarche_n de_fw-fr constantinople_n pour_fw-fr excommunier_fw-fr le_fw-fr pape_n &_o prononcer_fw-fr anatheme_n contre_fw-fr ses_fw-fr erreur_n dans_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr d'_fw-fr alexandrie_n le_fw-fr patriarche_n gelasius_n qui_fw-fr gouvernoit_fw-fr encore_fw-fr cetter_n eglise_fw-fr en_fw-fr l'année_fw-fr 1636_o avoit_fw-fr succedé_v à _fw-fr cyrile_a cyrile_a avoit_fw-fr
la_fw-fr succession_n des_fw-fr personnes_fw-fr dont_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a se_fw-mi vaunt_v à _fw-fr tout_fw-fr propos_fw-fr &_o mal_fw-fr à _fw-fr propos_fw-fr pui_fw-la squ_n '_o une_fw-fr eglise_fw-fr peut_fw-fr avoir_fw-fr une_fw-fr grande_fw-fr list_v de_fw-fr succession_n &_o estre_fw-fr une_fw-fr heretic_n comme_fw-fr vous_fw-fr voyez_fw-fr par_fw-fr tertullien_n puisque_fw-fr l'on_n peut_fw-fr estre_fw-fr assis_fw-la sur_fw-fr une_fw-fr chair_n qui_fw-fr estoit_fw-fr autrefois_fw-fr catholic_n &_o ne_fw-fr pas_fw-fr laisser_fw-fr pour_fw-fr cela_fw-fr que_fw-fr d'estre_fw-fr enemy_n juré_fw-fr de_fw-fr cette_fw-fr chair_n comme_fw-fr nous_fw-fr l'apprenons_a de_fw-mi st._n gregoire_n de_fw-fr nazianze_n mais_n il_fw-fr faut_fw-fr avec_fw-fr cela_fw-fr avoir_fw-fr la_fw-fr succession_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr foy_fw-fr la_fw-fr succession_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n &_o de_fw-fr la_fw-fr pieté_fw-fr &_o montrer_fw-fr comme_fw-fr parle_fw-fr tertullien_n une_fw-fr consanguinité_fw-fr de_fw-fr doctrine_n consanguinitatem_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la &_o c'est_fw-fr dont_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a ne_fw-mi se_fw-mi vaunt_v pas_fw-fr puisqu'elle_fw-fr ne_fw-fr peut_fw-fr même_fw-fr souffrir_fw-fr que_fw-fr l'on_n parle_fw-fr d'examiner_n sa_fw-fr doctrine_n par_fw-fr la_fw-fr parole_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr &_o de_fw-fr la_fw-fr comparer_n à _fw-fr la_fw-fr foy_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr &_o à _fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n des_fw-fr apôtres_fw-fr que_fw-fr ceux_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a ne_fw-mi se_fw-mi vantent_fw-la dont_fw-fr plus_fw-fr d'avoir_fw-fr possedé_v presque_fw-fr toutes_fw-fr les_fw-fr plus_fw-fr belles_fw-fr eglise_n du_fw-fr monde_fw-fr les_fw-fr ariens_fw-la les_fw-fr ont_fw-fr possedé_v aussi_fw-fr bien_fw-fr qu'eux_fw-fr &_o st._n hierosme_n ne_fw-fr laisse_fw-fr pas_fw-fr que_fw-fr de_fw-fr les_fw-fr traitter_fw-fr d'heretique_n l'eglise_fw-fr dit_fw-fr ce_fw-fr pere_fw-fr ne_o consist_v point_fw-fr en_fw-fr murailles_fw-fr &_o en_fw-fr bâtiment_n mais_fw-fr en_fw-fr la_fw-fr verité_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr doctrine_n l'eglise_fw-fr est_fw-fr où_fw-fr est_fw-fr la_fw-fr uray_fw-fr foy_fw-fr il_fw-fr y_fw-fr a_fw-fr quinze_fw-fr ou_fw-fr vingt_fw-fr ans_fw-fr disoit_fw-fr ce_fw-fr pere_fw-fr que_fw-fr les_fw-fr heretic_n possedoient_fw-fr tous_fw-fr ces_fw-fr bâtiment_n &_o meme_v toutes_fw-fr ces_fw-fr belles_fw-fr eglise_n mais_fw-fr en_fw-fr ce_fw-fr temps_fw-fr la_fw-fr la_fw-fr veritable_a eglise_fw-fr estoit_fw-fr où_fw-fr estoit_fw-fr la_fw-fr uraye_fw-fr foy_fw-fr ecclesia_fw-la autem_fw-la ibì_n vera_fw-la erat_fw-la ubì_n fides_fw-la erat_fw-la et_fw-fr ne_fw-fr pouvons_fw-fr nous_fw-fr pas_fw-fr dire_fw-fr la_fw-fr même_fw-fr choose_v dans_fw-fr ce_fw-fr royaume_n il_fw-fr y_fw-fr a_o 120_o ou_fw-fr 160_o ans_fw-fr passez_fw-fr avant_fw-fr le_fw-fr regne_fw-la d'_fw-fr henry_n 8_o i_o ou_fw-fr dela_n rhine_n elizabeth_n les_fw-fr papist_n possedoient_fw-fr tous_fw-fr ces_fw-fr bâtiment_n même_fw-fr toutes_fw-fr ces_fw-fr eglise_n mais_fw-fr dans_fw-fr ce_fw-fr temps_fw-fr la_fw-fr la_fw-fr veritable_a eglise_fw-fr estoit_fw-fr où_fw-fr estot_fw-fr la_fw-fr veritable_a foy_n ecclesia_fw-la autem_fw-la ibì_n vera_fw-la erat_fw-la ubì_n fides_fw-la erat_fw-la qu'ils_fw-fr ne_fw-fr nous_fw-fr disent_fw-fr donc_fw-fr point_fw-fr que_fw-fr le_fw-fr pape_n a_o succedé_v à _fw-la st._n pierre_n car_fw-fr nous_fw-fr leur_fw-fr répondron_n que_fw-fr neron_n estoit_fw-fr successeur_n d'_fw-fr auguste_n &_o cepandant_n neron_n estoit_fw-fr un_fw-fr tyrant_n auguste_fw-la estoit_fw-fr un_fw-fr bon_fw-fr prince_n nous_fw-fr leur_fw-fr diron_n que_fw-fr le_fw-fr roy_fw-fr manassés_fw-fr estoit_fw-fr successeur_n d'_fw-fr ezechias_n &_o que_fw-fr cepandant_n manassés_fw-fr estoit_fw-fr un_fw-fr profane_a ezechias_n estoit_fw-fr un_fw-fr saint_n enfin_fw-fr nous_fw-fr leur_fw-fr diron_n que_fw-fr les_fw-fr euéques_fw-la ariens_fw-la avoient_fw-fr succedé_v aux_fw-fr catholic_n que_fw-la l'impie_fw-la nestorius_n estoit_fw-fr legitime_fw-la successeur_n de_fw-fr st._n andré_n dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr chair_n de_fw-fr constantinople_n que_fw-fr le_fw-fr fameux_fw-fr heretic_n paul_n de_fw-fr samosate_n estoit_fw-fr legitime_fw-la successeur_n de_fw-fr st._n pierre_n dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr chair_n d'_fw-fr antioch_n &_o que_fw-fr tous_fw-fr ces_fw-fr gens_fw-fr la_fw-fr aussi_fw-fr bien_fw-fr que_fw-fr le_fw-fr pape_n n'ont_v succedé_v à _fw-fr ceux_fw-fr qui_fw-fr ont_fw-fr gouverné_fw-fr devant_fw-fr eux_fw-fr que_fw-fr comme_fw-fr la_fw-fr nuit_fw-fr succeed_v au_fw-fr jour_fw-fr la_fw-fr malady_n à _fw-fr la_fw-fr santé_fw-fr &_o la_fw-fr mort_fw-fr à _fw-fr la_fw-fr vie_fw-fr chapitre_fw-fr ii_o des_n fondement_n veritable_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr roman_a d'apresent_v 2._o chap._n 2._o avssi_fw-fr toast_n que_fw-fr j'eus_fw-la renversé_fw-fr ces_fw-fr trois_fw-fr grands_fw-fr phantosme_n l'_fw-fr antiquité_fw-fr la_fw-fr multitude_n &_o la_fw-fr succession_n dont_fw-fr on_o a_o coustume_n de_fw-fr covurir_fw-fr les_fw-fr erreur_n de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr de_fw-fr rome_n il_fw-fr i_o fut_fw-fr aise_fw-fr de_fw-fr reconnoistre_fw-fr les_fw-fr veritable_n pivot_v sur_fw-fr lesquels_fw-fr elle_fw-fr roll_n &_o les_fw-fr fondement_n sur_fw-fr lesquels_fw-fr elle_fw-fr est_fw-fr bâtie_n et_fw-fr ces_fw-fr fondement_n n'estant_n ny_fw-fr l'_fw-fr authorité_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'escriture_n ny_fw-fr la_fw-fr docrrine_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr primitive_a eglise_fw-fr ny_fw-fr l'antiquité_fw-fr ny_fw-fr la_fw-fr multitude_n ny_fw-fr la_fw-fr succession_n des_fw-fr eglise_n ou_fw-fr des_fw-fr euéques_fw-fr je_fw-fr reconnus_fw-la aprés_fw-fr avoir_fw-fr bien_fw-fr examiné_fw-fr qu'ils_fw-fr ne_fw-fr pouvoient_fw-fr estre_fw-fr autre_fw-fr que_fw-fr l'_fw-fr ambition_n &_o l'_fw-fr avarice_n de_fw-fr ceux_fw-fr qui_fw-fr la_fw-fr gouvernent_fw-fr &_o que_fw-fr c'estoit_fw-fr delà _fw-fr que_fw-fr sont_fw-fr procedez_fw-fr toutes_fw-fr les_fw-fr erreur_n &_o toutes_fw-fr les_fw-fr corruption_n de_fw-fr cette_fw-fr eglise_fw-fr section_n 1._o de_fw-fr l'ambition_n des_fw-fr papes_n §._o 1._o le_fw-fr pape_n s'éleve_fw-fr au_fw-fr dessus_fw-fr des_fw-fr roys_n au_fw-fr lieu_fw-fr que_fw-fr de_fw-fr droit_fw-fr il_fw-fr deveroit_fw-fr leur_fw-fr estre_fw-fr soûmis_fw-fr je_n pape_n gregoire_n 7_o i_o dans_fw-fr un_fw-fr synod_n tenu_fw-fr à _fw-fr rome_n l'an_n 1076._o establit_fw-la 27_o proposition_n sur_fw-fr lesquelles_fw-fr effondée_fw-fr toute_fw-fr la_fw-fr grandeur_fw-fr de_fw-fr rome_n qui_fw-fr sont_fw-fr appellées_fw-fr la_fw-fr dictature_n du_fw-fr pape_n &_o que_fw-fr l'on_n peut_fw-fr voir_fw-fr dans_fw-fr baronius_n entre_fw-fr lesquelles_fw-fr on_o trouve_fw-fr les_fw-fr proposition_n suivante_v les_fw-fr prince_n doivene_v baiser_fw-fr les_fw-fr pieds_fw-fr du_fw-fr pape_n il_fw-fr est_fw-fr permiââ_n au_fw-fr pape_n de_fw-fr déposer_n les_fw-fr roys_n &_o le_z emperor_n &_o d'absoûdre_fw-fr des_fw-fr suject_a dela_n fidelité_n &_o de_fw-fr l'obeissance_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr doivent_fw-fr à _fw-fr leur_fw-fr prince_n comme_fw-fr à _fw-fr leu_fw-fr signior_n &_o superieur_n naturel_n c'est_fw-fr pour_fw-fr establir_fw-fr ces_fw-fr belles_fw-fr propoâtions_n que_fw-fr le_fw-fr pape_n innocent_a iii_o ãâã_d rapport_v de_fw-fr durand_n compare_v le_fw-fr pape_n l'_fw-fr arche_n d'aliance_n &_o dit_fw-fr que_fw-fr les_fw-fr caâdinaux_n diacres_n ont_fw-fr la_fw-fr charge_n de_fw-fr poâter_n le_fw-fr pape_n sur_fw-fr leur_fw-fr epaule_fw-fr parcequdans_fw-fr l'_fw-fr ancient_a testament_n c'estoit_fw-fr la_fw-fr charge_n des_fw-fr levites_n de_fw-fr porter_n sur_fw-fr leur_fw-fr épaules_fw-fr l'arche_n du_fw-fr seigneur_fw-fr c'est_fw-fr pour_fw-fr cela_fw-fr que_fw-fr dans_fw-fr les_fw-fr procession_n publique_n qui_fw-la se_fw-la font_n à _fw-fr rome_n on_o porte_fw-fr le_fw-fr pape_n &_o le_fw-fr sacrament_n en_fw-fr procession_n avec_fw-fr cette_fw-fr difference_n que_fw-fr le_fw-fr sacrament_n qui_fw-fr dans_fw-fr l'opinion_n de_fw-fr rome_n est_fw-fr transubstantié_fw-fr au_fw-fr corpse_n de_fw-fr jesus_n christ_n est_fw-fr attaché_fw-fr sur_fw-fr le_fw-fr do_v d'un_fw-fr mulet_n au_fw-fr lieu_fw-fr que_fw-fr le_fw-fr pape_n est_fw-fr porté_fw-fr auéc_fw-fr magnificence_n par_fw-fr les_fw-fr prince_n &_o par_fw-fr les_fw-fr roys_n qui_fw-fr sont_fw-fr la_fw-fr present_n ou_fw-fr bien_fw-fr par_fw-fr leur_fw-fr ambassadeurs_fw-fr s'ils_fw-fr n'y_fw-fr sont_fw-fr pas_fw-fr present_n en_fw-fr personne_fw-fr ainsi_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr est_fw-fr escrit_fw-fr dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr livre_fw-fr de_fw-fr leur_fw-fr ceremony_n c'estoit_fw-fr pour_fw-fr mettre_fw-fr en_fw-fr pratique_a cette_fw-fr belle_fw-fr maxim_n de_fw-fr déposer_n les_fw-fr roys_n &_o the_o dispenser_n leur_fw-fr sujets_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'obeissance_fw-fr qu'ils_fw-fr leur_fw-fr doivent_fw-fr que_fw-fr le_fw-fr pape_n gregoire_n 7_o i_o deposa_fw-mi l'empereur_fw-fr henry_n ãâã_d &_o bolesläus_n 2_o roy_fw-fr de_fw-fr pologne_n cue_n les_fw-fr pape_n zacharie_n déposa_fw-la chilperic_n roy_fw-fr de_fw-fr france_n dispensa_fw-la les_fw-fr françois_fw-fr dâ_n la_fw-fr fidelité_n qu'il_fw-fr devoient_fw-la à _fw-fr leur_fw-fr roy_fw-fr legitime_fw-la &_o mit_fw-fr pepin_n en_fw-fr sa_fw-fr place_n c'estoit_fw-fr pour_fw-fr la_fw-fr même_fw-fr raison_fw-fr que_fw-fr bonâ_n face_n viii_o deposa_fw-la philippe_n le_fw-fr bel_n prenonça_fw-fr contre_fw-fr luy_fw-fr la_fw-fr sentence_n d'excommunication_n dans_fw-fr cette_fw-fr belle_fw-fr decretale_n qui_fw-fr commance_n unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la où_fw-fr le_fw-fr pape_n luy_fw-fr même_fw-fr déclare_v qu'il_fw-fr est_fw-fr necessaire_fw-fr de_fw-fr necessité_fw-fr de_fw-fr salut_fw-fr à _fw-fr toute_fw-fr creature_n human_a d'estre_fw-fr soûmise_fw-fr au_fw-fr pape_n de_fw-fr rome_n c'estoit_fw-fr pour_fw-fr cela_fw-fr que_fw-fr le_fw-fr pape_n innocent_n iii_o déposa_fw-la l'empereur_fw-fr othon_n iu_o qu'_fw-fr innocent_n iu._n déposa_fw-la l'empereur_fw-fr frederic_n ii_o que_fw-fr jules_n ii_o osta_fw-mi la_fw-fr royaûme_fw-fr de_fw-fr navarre_n à _fw-fr son_fw-fr roy_fw-fr naturel_fw-fr pour_fw-fr le_fw-fr donnere_fw-la au_fw-fr roy_fw-fr d'_fw-fr espâgue_fw-fr enfin_fw-fr c'estoit_fw-fr pour_fw-fr maintenir_fw-fr toutes_fw-fr ces_fw-fr belles_fw-fr maxim_n qu'environ_v
hand_n on_o all_o the_o church_n there_o will_v be_v no_o other_o proof_n of_o christianity_n no_o other_o shelter_n for_o the_o christian_n who_o shall_v desire_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n than_o the_o holy_a scripture_n than_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o true_o in_o that_o time_n as_o well_o as_o in_o all_o those_o which_o i_o have_v mark_v heretofore_o the_o multitude_n will_v follow_v the_o part_n of_o error_n and_o the_o true_a church_n shall_v be_v reduce_v to_o a_o little_a flock_n which_o shall_v be_v strengthen_v only_o with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n against_o all_o the_o stratagem_n and_o the_o persecution_n of_o antichrist_n to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o that_o proof_n i_o will_v rehearse_v what_o happen_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a according_a to_o that_o which_o sophronius_n 8._o sophronius_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 8._o relate_v all_o the_o bishop_n think_v to_o introduce_v into_o the_o church_n a_o new_a law_n which_o be_v that_o those_o who_o will_v be_v in_o the_o sacred_a order_n shall_v lead_v a_o single_a life_n the_o good_a priest_n paphnutius_fw-la a_o venerable_a old_a man_n of_o a_o holiness_n and_o purity_n free_a from_o all_o slander_n rise_v in_o the_o middle_n of_o that_o multitude_n of_o bishop_n you_o must_v not_o say_v he_o to_o they_o lay_v so_o heavy_a a_o burden_n upon_o the_o shoulder_n of_o those_o who_o be_v in_o the_o sacred_a order_n you_o be_v to_o consider_v what_o st._n paul_n 13.9_o paul_n ad_fw-la hebr._fw-la 13.9_o say_v that_o marriage_n be_v honourable_a in_o all_o and_o the_o bed_n undefiled_a to_o that_o voice_n a_o numerous_a multitude_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n who_o be_v present_a there_o vouchsafe_v their_o attention_n consider_v that_o holy_a old_a man_n as_o a_o apostle_n who_o come_v to_o declare_v to_o they_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o change_v their_o resolution_n so_o know_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o st._n paul_n that_o marriage_n be_v honourable_a in_o all_o they_o leave_v all_o the_o churchman_n free_a to_o live_v in_o the_o state_n of_o marriage_n as_o they_o have_v use_v to_o do_v before_o do_v but_o judge_v now_o if_o in_o that_o time_n the_o multitude_n get_v the_o advantage_n over_o truth_n and_o if_o the_o father_n of_o that_o council_n be_v of_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o the_o multitude_n of_o those_o who_o hold_v one_o and_o the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o belief_n §._o 3._o succession_n be_v not_o a_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n if_o succession_n can_v give_v the_o right_n of_o be_v infallible_a there_o be_v no_o church_n in_o the_o world_n which_o have_v more_o right_a to_o be_v esteem_v such_o than_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n it_o be_v of_o jerusalem_n that_o it_o be_v say_v 7._o say_v 2_o chron._n 33.4_o 7._o in_o jerusalem_n shall_v my_o name_n be_v for_o ever_o in_o this_o house_n and_o in_o jerusalem_n which_o i_o have_v choose_v before_o all_o the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n will_v i_o put_v my_o name_n for_o ever_o 7.16_o ever_o 2_o chron._n 7.16_o i_o have_v choose_v and_o sanctify_v this_o house_n that_o my_o name_n may_v be_v there_o for_o ever_o and_o my_o eye_n and_o my_o heart_n shall_v be_v there_o perpetual_o 14._o perpetual_o psal_n 132.13_o 14._o the_o lord_n have_v choose_v zion_n he_o have_v desire_v it_o for_o his_o habitation_n this_o be_v my_o rest_n for_o ever_o here_o will_v i_o dwell_v for_o i_o have_v desire_v it_o etc._n etc._n and_o i_o will_v also_o clothe_v her_o priest_n with_o salvation_n it_o be_v upon_o all_o those_o fair_a promise_n the_o priest_n proceed_v in_o withstand_v the_o truth_n which_o be_v preach_v to_o they_o by_o the_o prophet_n it_o be_v for_o that_o reason_n they_o exclaim_v so_o often_o upon_o all_o occasion_n 7.4_o occasion_n jerem._n 7.4_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v these_o but_o hear_v what_o the_o lord_n answer_v etc._n answer_v v._o 8_o 11_o 12_o etc._n etc._n behold_v you_o trust_v in_o lie_v word_n that_o can_v profit_v be_v this_o house_n which_o be_v call_v by_o my_o name_n become_v a_o den_n of_o robber_n in_o your_o eye_n behold_v even_o i_o have_v see_v it_o say_v the_o lord_n but_o go_v you_o now_o unto_o my_o place_n which_o be_v in_o shiloh_n where_o i_o set_v my_o name_n at_o the_o first_o and_o see_v what_o i_o do_v to_o it_o for_o the_o wickedness_n of_o my_o people_n israel_n and_o now_o because_o you_o have_v do_v all_o these_o work_n say_v the_o lord_n therefore_o will_v i_o do_v unto_o this_o house_n which_o be_v call_v by_o my_o name_n wherein_o you_o trust_v and_o unto_o the_o place_n which_o i_o give_v to_o you_o and_o to_o your_o father_n as_o i_o have_v do_v to_o shiloh_n and_o i_o will_v cast_v you_o out_o of_o my_o sight_n etc._n etc._n the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o other_o prophet_n where_o jerusalem_n after_o it_o have_v be_v establish_v by_o the_o lord_n as_o a_o tabernacle_n which_o shall_v never_o be_v remove_v it_o be_v say_v afterward_o that_o for_o its_o abomination_n it_o be_v transport_v into_o babylon_n if_o shiloh_n have_v cease_v to_o be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n if_o jerusalem_n be_v reduce_v into_o a_o wilderness_n where_o nothing_o grow_v but_o brier_n and_o thorn_n where_o 5.6_o where_o isaiah_n 5.6_o god_n will_v command_v the_o cloud_n that_o they_o rain_v no_o rain_n upon_o it_o have_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n any_o reason_n to_o brag_v so_o much_o because_o it_o have_v be_v in_o time_n past_o the_o nurse_n of_o martyr_n the_o seedplot_n of_o saint_n do_v it_o follow_v from_o thence_o that_o it_o be_v still_o at_o this_o time_n in_o the_o same_o condition_n it_o be_v in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n have_v not_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n a_o great_a deal_n of_o reason_n to_o fear_n that_o after_o all_o the_o abomination_n it_o have_v be_v fill_v withal_o by_o those_o who_o have_v have_v the_o government_n thereof_o it_o may_v be_v deal_v with_o like_a jerusalem_n that_o it_o may_v be_v make_v a_o den_n of_o robber_n a_o horrible_a babylon_n a_o dreadful_a wilderness_n where_o grow_v nothing_o but_o brier_n and_o thorn_n and_o where_o god_n have_v permit_v that_o the_o heaven_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n shall_v be_v shut_v up_o and_o that_o there_o shall_v not_o fall_v a_o drop_n of_o his_o word_n upon_o those_o who_o stubborn_o persist_v in_o its_o abomination_n in_o fine_a can_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o hope_n of_o have_v more_o privilege_n than_o many_o other_o church_n which_o have_v be_v build_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o eastern_a part_n which_o have_v conserve_v during_o long_a space_n of_o year_n their_o right_a succession_n preserve_v from_o bishop_n to_o bishop_n from_o pastor_n to_o pastor_n and_o which_o notwithstanding_o all_o that_o have_v be_v since_o by_o the_o turk_n turn_v into_o several_a mosque_n where_o those_o infidel_n have_v the_o exercise_n of_o their_o religion_n if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n it_o teach_v be_v to_o be_v follow_v because_o the_o pope_n who_o do_v govern_v at_o this_o time_n have_v succeed_v one_o another_o from_o bishop_n to_o bishop_n in_o st._n peter_n chair_n i_o answer_v that_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n in_o the_o time_n of_o paul_n samosatenus_fw-la it_o be_v necessary_a for_o every_o body_n to_o be_v a_o heretic_n because_o paul_n of_o samosate_n be_v right_a bishop_n and_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n that_o he_o have_v succeed_v lawful_o demetrius_n demetrius_n fabius_n fabius_n babilas_n who_o succeed_v zebinus_n he_o philetus_n he_o asclepiades_n he_o serapion_n he_o maximinus_fw-la he_o theophilus_n he_o cornelius_n he_o hero_z he_o ignatius_n he_o evodius_n who_o succeed_v lawful_o st._n peter_n i_o answer_v that_o in_o the_o age_n wherein_o live_v nestorius_n every_o body_n be_v engage_v to_o be_v a_o nestorian_a because_o nestorius_n be_v rightful_a bishop_n and_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n right_a successor_n to_o sisinius_n to_o atticus_n to_o arsatius_n to_o john_n chrysostomus_n to_o nectarius_n to_o gregory_n of_o nazianze_n and_o so_o from_o bishop_n to_o bishop_n the_o 36_o according_a to_o the_o chronicle_n of_o nicephorus_n who_o have_v lawful_o succeed_v in_o that_o chair_n the_o apostle_n st._n andrew_n in_o fine_a to_o follow_v without_o partiality_n that_o principle_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o give_v it_o the_o extent_n such_o a_o proposition_n ought_v to_o have_v which_o be_v always_o false_a if_o it_o be_v not_o universal_a and_o capable_a to_o be_v the_o first_o proposition_n of_o a_o syllogism_n i_o answer_v the_o pope_n be_v to_o revoke_v the_o thunderbolt_n they_o have_v throw_v against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n
be_v bishop_n of_o the_o place_n where_o that_o council_n be_v hold_v since_o according_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o chancellor_n schismatis_fw-la chancellor_n tom._n 4._o in_o propos_fw-fr utilibus_fw-la ad_fw-la exterminat_fw-la schismatis_fw-la gerson_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n four_o council_n be_v hold_v where_o st._n peter_n be_v not_o present_a now_o it_o be_v a_o principle_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n give_v one_o the_o right_a of_o preside_v in_o all_o council_n from_o whence_o the_o consequence_n be_v manifest_a as_o for_o the_o time_n which_o have_v follow_v those_o of_o the_o apostle_n we_o know_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o always_o preside_v in_o all_o general_a council_n and_o that_o the_o only_a thought_n of_o be_v elevate_v above_o other_o bishop_n and_o style_v universal_a be_v a_o abomination_n among_o all_o the_o ancient_n and_o a_o thing_n look_v upon_o as_o a_o apostasy_n and_o a_o monstrous_a error_n proceed_v from_o the_o bottom_n of_o hell_n to_o plant_v impiety_n and_o idolatry_n in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o five_o age_n about_o the_o year_n 600._o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n will_v have_v challenge_v to_o himself_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n and_o be_v in_o that_o enterprise_n support_v by_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o emperor_n mauricius_n at_o the_o novelty_n of_o that_o monstrous_a title_n all_o christendom_n be_v strike_v with_o horror_n pope_n gregory_n the_o great_a stir_v up_o with_o the_o zeal_n of_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n withstand_v vigorous_o the_o establishment_n of_o that_o new_a title_n he_o write_v to_o eulogius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o to_o anastasius_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n 36._o antioch_n epist_n 36._o never_o a_o one_o of_o my_o predecessor_n say_v he_o have_v be_v willing_a to_o consent_v to_o a_o title_n so_o profane_a as_o that_o of_o universal_a bishop_n challenge_v to_o himself_o the_o primacy_n over_o the_o other_o god_n forbid_v that_o christian_a mind_n shall_v ever_o be_v infect_v with_o such_o a_o opinion_n as_o to_o believe_v that_o there_o may_v be_v in_o the_o world_n some_o bishop_n who_o can_v by_o right_o take_v to_o himself_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a and_o in_o another_o 6._o another_o epist_n 24._o lib._n 6._o epistle_n to_o the_o same_o without_o speak_v say_v he_o of_o the_o wrong_n which_o be_v do_v to_o you_o if_o some_o body_n be_v call_v universal_a bishop_n this_o universal_a bishop_n be_v fall_v all_o the_o universal_a church_n must_v need_v fall_n to_o the_o ground_n together_o with_o he_o and_o what_o madness_n say_v he_o what_o levity_n be_v it_o to_o run_v after_o such_o a_o doctrine_n to_o the_o emperor_n mauricius_n 4._o mauricius_n epist_n 32._o lib._n 4._o he_o protest_v that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o his_o own_o particular_a interest_n that_o he_o withstand_v that_o pretend_a primacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n he_o make_v he_o understand_v that_o it_o be_v the_o business_n of_o all_o the_o church_n that_o such_o a_o title_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o holy_a canon_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o usurpation_n nunquid_fw-la ego_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la re_fw-la piissime_fw-la domine_fw-la propriam_fw-la causam_fw-la defendo_fw-la etc._n etc._n causam_fw-la vniversalis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ago_o etc._n etc._n that_o such_o a_o title_n be_v new_a in_o the_o church_n never_o one_o of_o my_o predecessor_n say_v he_o again_o have_v be_v willing_a to_o consent_v to_o that_o title_n of_o singularity_n lest_o other_o bishop_n shall_v be_v thereby_o deprive_v of_o the_o honour_n which_o be_v owe_v to_o they_o and_o in_o another_o epistle_n 4._o epistle_n epist_n 30._o lib._n 4._o to_o the_o same_o emperor_n he_o do_v open_o declare_v that_o if_o any_o bishop_n desire_v to_o be_v call_v universal_a bishop_n he_o be_v the_o forerunner_n of_o the_o antichrist_n in_o fine_a he_o write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n himself_o he_o pray_v he_o he_o beseech_v he_o he_o exhort_v he_o not_o to_o consent_v to_o that_o title_n full_a of_o error_n of_o ambition_n and_o madness_n he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o temptation_n of_o the_o devil_n of_o which_o he_o must_v beware_v and_o that_o to_o consent_v to_o receive_v so_o mischievous_a a_o title_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o lose_v the_o faith_n and_o to_o become_v a_o apostate_n from_o christianity_n but_o alas_o those_o word_n full_a of_o zeal_n and_o truth_n be_v the_o last_o word_n of_o the_o true_a roman_a church_n that_o church_n cease_v with_o gregory_n the_o great_a and_o there_o succeed_v in_o its_o place_n a_o corrupt_a roman_a church_n who_o bishop_n challenge_v to_o himself_o that_o monstrous_a name_n full_a of_o blasphemy_n and_o apostasy_n which_o his_o predecessor_n withstand_v so_o generous_o the_o emperor_n mauricius_n be_v murder_v by_o phocas_n phocas_n usurp_v the_o empire_n and_o make_v himself_o a_o tyrant_n and_o to_o have_v some_o prop_n for_o his_o tyranny_n he_o give_v boniface_n iii_o to_o make_v he_o his_o creature_n the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n and_o that_o title_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n thus_o usurp_v be_v establish_v by_o degree_n fair_a and_o soft_o by_o the_o pope_n cunning_a trick_n so_o that_o about_o the_o year_n 642._o they_o begin_v in_o the_o superscription_n of_o letter_n which_o be_v write_v to_o the_o pope_n theodorus_n to_o set_v these_o word_n which_o be_v relate_v by_o sygebertus_fw-la in_o his_o chroncile_v to_o the_o holy_a father_n of_o father_n and_o sovereign_a prelate_n of_o prelate_n etc._n etc._n against_o that_o monstrous_a name_n full_a of_o blasphemy_n and_o apostasy_n the_o church_n of_o greece_n of_o dacia_n and_o illyrium_n make_v opposition_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n spain_n and_o england_n be_v a_o long_a while_n afore_o they_o can_v abide_v that_o huge_a and_o heavy_a burden_n of_o the_o pope_n dominion_n and_o submit_v themselves_o to_o that_o primacy_n and_o universality_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n this_o be_v the_o story_n and_o the_o progress_n of_o that_o primacy_n and_o it_o be_v upon_o that_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n and_o sovereign_a prelate_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n assert_n the_o pope_n to_o be_v infallible_a that_o it_o be_v by_o his_o judgement_n that_o the_o other_o bishop_n must_v be_v govern_v and_o likewise_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o there_o be_v none_o upon_o earth_n capable_a of_o redress_v what_o the_o pope_n have_v once_o ordain_v as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o one_o of_o those_o 27_o proposition_n in_o which_o consist_v the_o dictatorship_n of_o the_o pope_n §_o 3._o that_o the_o ambition_n of_o the_o pope_n extend_v it_o self_n as_o far_o as_o impiety_n you_o will_v imagine_v that_o proposition_n to_o be_v a_o paradox_n viz._n that_o the_o roman_a religion_n be_v ground_v upon_o impiety_n since_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o contrary_a to_o religion_n than_o impiety_n but_o as_o much_o paradox_n as_o it_o be_v it_o be_v very_o true_a for_o all_o that_o or_o if_o one_o of_o the_o member_n of_o that_o proposition_n be_v to_o be_v destroy_v to_o hinder_v it_o from_o be_v a_o paradox_n we_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o romish_a be_v not_o a_o religion_n as_o for_o the_o other_o member_n of_o the_o proposition_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o impiety_n nothing_o be_v more_o true_a and_o more_o easy_a to_o to_o be_v prove_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v all_o ground_a upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n now_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v injurious_a unto_o god_n majesty_n it_o do_v establish_v a_o manifest_a impiety_n therefore_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o religigion_n or_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v ground_v upon_o impiety_n to_o prove_v the_o 2_o proposition_n of_o that_o argument_n i_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o do_v but_o to_o show_v that_o the_o pope_n challenge_n to_o themselves_o the_o power_n of_o dispense_n with_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o after_o they_o have_v take_v to_o themselves_o a_o power_n as_o mighty_a as_o that_o of_o god_n almighty_n they_o have_v the_o temerity_n to_o take_v also_o to_o themselves_o the_o same_o title_n that_o we_o use_v to_o attribute_v only_o to_o god_n or_o to_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n 1._o the_o pope_n take_v to_o himself_o as_o great_a a_o authority_n as_o that_o of_o god_n almighty_n according_a to_o the_o maxim_n of_o optatus_n 3._o optatus_n lib._n 3._o that_o there_o be_v none_o but_o god_n about_o king_n and_o emperor_n that_o he_o who_o exalt_v himself_o above_o those_o anoint_a of_o god_n raise_v himself_o above_o all_o man_n and_o make_v himself_o equal_a with_o god_n cum_fw-la super_fw-la imperatorem_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la nisi_fw-la solus_fw-la
all_o kind_n of_o gainful_a bull_n whereupon_o pope_n sixtus_n iv_o be_v wont_a to_o say_v that_o he_o shall_v never_o want_v money_n if_o so_o be_v that_o he_o shall_v never_o want_v pen_n and_o ink_n to_o write_v do_v but_o open_a the_o historian_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v there_o the_o crafty_a trick_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v use_v to_o draw_v huge_a sum_n of_o money_n out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n that_o have_v acknowledge_v his_o jurisdiction_n about_o the_o year_n 1216_o whilst_o england_n overcharge_v and_o almost_o oppress_v groan_v still_o under_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o pope_n send_v his_o legate_n into_o this_o kingdom_n they_o preach_v a_o crosadoe_n against_o the_o turk_n and_o the_o bull_n of_o the_o pope_n grant_v those_o who_o will_v make_v a_o voew_fw-mi to_o go_v into_o the_o holy_a land_n to_o recover_v the_o holy_a sepulchre_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o a_o degree_n of_o glory_n in_o heaven_n above_o the_o rest_n upon_o this_o a_o great_a multitude_n of_o gentry_n sell_v and_o mortgage_v their_o land_n and_o estate_n for_o the_o charge_n of_o that_o journey_n but_o as_o they_o be_v arm_v and_o furnish_v for_o their_o journey_n another_o legate_n come_v that_o dispense_v the_o english_a from_o their_o vow_n and_o give_v they_o the_o same_o grace_n and_o indulgence_n without_o budge_v from_o their_o own_o house_n provide_v they_o will_v give_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o much_o money_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o have_v be_v spend_v in_o their_o journey_n these_o be_v the_o fine_a device_n which_o the_o pope_n use_v to_o draw_v money_n out_o of_o england_n never_o a_o year_n pass_v but_o the_o pope_n send_v over_o into_o this_o kingdom_n some_o new_a commission_n some_o new_a pretence_n to_o raise_v money_n in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o pope_n call_v england_n his_o garden_n of_o pleasure_n and_o his_o bottomless_a treasure_n it_o be_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o bull_n indulgence_n forgiveness_n dispensation_n and_o other_o such_o stuff_v the_o pope_n have_v use_v to_o draw_v from_o other_o kingdom_n as_o well_o as_o from_o england_n innumerable_a sum_n of_o money_n in_o the_o time_n of_o martin_n v._o they_o bring_v out_o of_o france_n to_o rome_n 9000000_o nine_o million_o of_o crown_n which_o be_v 2250000_o two_o million_o two_o hundred_o fifty_o thousand_o pound_n sterling_a and_o at_o this_o time_n the_o pope_n be_v wont_a to_o complain_v of_o france_n and_o the_o italian_n style_v it_o heretic_n or_o at_o least_o semiheretick_n because_o the_o pope_n have_v now_o out_o of_o that_o kingdom_n every_o year_n but_o 28_o tun_n of_o gold_n which_o be_v 560000_o five_o hundred_o sixty_o thousand_o pound_n sterling_a and_o 1690000_o sixteen_o hundred_o ninety_o thousand_o pound_n sterling_a less_o than_o they_o have_v use_v to_o receive_v do_v but_o judge_v from_o thence_o what_o he_o have_v what_o he_o have_v and_o what_o he_o intend_v to_o have_v out_o of_o all_o the_o other_o kingdom_n which_o be_v submit_v to_o his_o dominion_n conclusion_n of_o the_o second_o part._n that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o principle_n which_o i_o have_v rehearse_v be_v fall_v into_o corruption_n and_o error_n §._o 1._o horrid_a corruption_n in_o its_o manner_n what_o can_v we_o expect_v of_o a_o church_n which_o be_v ground_v upon_o ambition_n and_o covetousness_n but_o that_o it_o must_v fall_v into_o abundance_n of_o error_n and_o prostitute_v itself_o to_o all_o kind_n of_o corruption_n and_o so_o it_o be_v happen_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v but_o read_v the_o life_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o have_v rule_v it_o since_o its_o fall_n you_o shall_v find_v there_o such_o dreadful_a and_o horrid_a story_n as_o scarce_o can_v you_o find_v among_o turk_n and_o idolater_n pope_n john_n xi_o who_o be_v bastard_n to_o pope_n sergius_n govern_v the_o roman_a church_n about_o the_o year_n 931._o he_o be_v a_o monster_n as_o baronius_n himself_o relate_v yet_o for_o all_o that_o he_o be_v the_o chief_a of_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v but_o judge_v now_o what_o can_v that_o church_n be_v who_o head_n be_v a_o monster_n pope_n john_n xii_o have_v the_o government_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n about_o the_o year_n 955._o he_o be_v but_o 18_o year_n old_a when_o he_o be_v make_v pope_n baronius_n speak_v of_o that_o pope_n with_o horror_n and_o execration_n and_o if_o you_o will_v know_v the_o particularity_n of_o the_o life_n of_o that_o pope_n you_o be_v but_o to_o read_v luitprandus_fw-la 11._o luitprandus_fw-la lib._n 6._o cap._n 11._o sygebert_n 963._o sygebert_n an._n 963._o and_o antonin_n 16._o antonin_n in_o his_o cronicl_n tom._n 2._o tract_n 16._o §._o 16._o and_o you_o shall_v learn_v that_o that_o pope_n be_v worse_a than_o a_o turk_n or_o a_o idolater_n he_o take_v child_n to_o make_v they_o bishop_n he_o confer_v the_o sacred_a order_n in_o a_o stable_a he_o drink_v to_o the_o devil_n good_a health_n his_o occupation_n all_o the_o day_n long_o be_v to_o spend_v the_o time_n in_o play_v at_o die_n or_o other_o sort_n of_o game_n and_o it_o be_v in_o those_o pastime_n he_o use_v to_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o jupiter_n and_o venus_n after_o which_o the_o death_n of_o that_o pope_n be_v conformable_a enough_o to_o the_o life_n he_o have_v lead_v for_o whilst_o he_o be_v in_o the_o middle_n of_o his_o dissoluteness_n the_o devil_n beat_v he_o so_o much_o that_o he_o die_v of_o it_o be_v not_o the_o roman_a church_n well_o ground_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o such_o a_o pope_n and_o be_v it_o not_o a_o thing_n well_o contrive_v to_o say_v that_o a_o pope_n who_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o devil_n enjoy_v a_o infallible_a authority_n and_o that_o a_o church_n which_o be_v ground_v upon_o such_o a_o authority_n be_v unable_a to_o receive_v or_o conceive_v any_o error_n we_o be_v but_o to_o read_v platina_n onnphrius_n and_o other_o who_o be_v historian_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o discover_v the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o pope_n pope_n boniface_n murder_v 985._o murder_v baron_fw-fr a_o 985._o two_o pope_n to_o be_v their_o successor_n in_o the_o chair_n of_o rome_n and_o benedict_n ix_o who_o be_v but_o ten_o year_n old_a when_o he_o be_v make_v pope_n by_o the_o faction_n of_o his_o father_n live_v a_o monstrous_a life_n all_o the_o while_o he_o sit_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o rome_n witness_n baronius_n platina_n and_o other_o there_o have_v be_v a_o time_n that_o they_o have_v see_v three_o pope_n at_o a_o time_n excommucate_v one_o another_o they_o have_v see_v in_o that_o chair_n pope_n murderer_n pope_n adulterer_n pope_n sorcerer_n perjure_a person_n simoniacal_a and_o full_a of_o all_o other_o crime_n that_o can_v be_v imagine_v and_o to_o say_v that_o such_o pope_n be_v infallible_a that_o they_o be_v governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n true_o if_o we_o speak_v strict_o there_o be_v not_o a_o evident_a metaphysical_a contradiction_n no_o more_o than_o there_o be_v a_o evident_a metaphysical_a contradiction_n in_o say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n may_v take_v even_o the_o devil_n to_o make_v they_o the_o ordinary_a preacher_n of_o his_o gospel_n and_o the_o organ_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o he_o may_v choose_v satan_n to_o make_v he_o the_o governor_n of_o his_o church_n nevertheless_o though_o those_o proposition_n contain_v not_o a_o strict_a impossibility_n yet_o we_o may_v say_v that_o they_o contain_v a_o infinite_a number_n of_o inconvenience_n and_o impossibility_n in_o morality_n and_o man_n can_v hardly_o believe_v that_o god_n almighty_a shall_v have_v choose_v satan_n among_o all_o his_o creature_n to_o make_v he_o the_o governor_n of_o his_o church_n i_o say_v the_o same_o of_o the_o pope_n man_n can_v hardly_o believe_v that_o god_n shall_v have_v choose_v the_o good_a friend_n of_o the_o devil_n those_o creature_n which_o the_o most_o moderate_a among_o the_o papist_n call_v monster_n to_o make_v they_o the_o organ_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o chief_n of_o the_o true_a church_n judge_n of_o the_o member_n by_o their_o chief_n and_o inquire_v from_o those_o who_o have_v travel_v into_o italy_n what_o life_n lead_v the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o cardinal_n and_o other_o prince_n of_o that_o church_n or_o else_o read_v what_o honorius_n of_o authun_n sygebert_n and_o st._n bernard_n have_v write_v this_o be_v for_o corruption_n of_o manner_n §._o 2._o some_o extreme_o gross_a error_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o rome_n as_o for_o the_o error_n that_o be_v build_v upon_o those_o principle_n which_o i_o have_v rehearse_v i_o shall_v write_v a_o great_a volume_n if_o i_o shall_v relate_v they_o all_o and_o show_v that_o it_o be_v upon_o those_o principle_n that_o the_o discovery_n of_o a_o purgatory_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o corruption_n and_o
be_v possible_a that_o god_n shall_v ask_v of_o i_o a_o account_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o those_o man_n who_o will_v stubborn_o follow_v error_n and_o who_o be_v all_o dispose_v to_o tear_v i_o in_o piece_n if_o i_o dare_v publish_v the_o truth_n be_o i_o better_a than_o i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o learned_a man_n who_o live_v in_o france_n who_o know_v weary_a well_o the_o error_n of_o rome_n who_o notwithstanding_o continue_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n be_o i_o better_a than_o a_o great_a many_o doctor_n of_o sorbon_n who_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v fall_v into_o a_o multitude_n of_o error_n and_o corruption_n even_o as_o many_o of_o they_o have_v often_o declare_v to_o their_o friend_n be_o i_o better_a than_o several_a bishop_n and_o archbishop_n of_o france_n who_o suppose_v themselves_o equal_a in_o every_o thing_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o do_v not_o repute_v his_o decree_n to_o be_v of_o a_o infallible_a determination_n in_o fine_a be_o i_o better_a than_o all_o those_o gentleman_n who_o compose_v that_o famous_a society_n of_o jansenist_n who_o be_v almost_o all_o the_o most_o learned_a writer_n the_o rare_a man_n and_o most_o witty_a in_o all_o that_o kingdom_n be_o i_o better_o say_v i_o than_o all_o those_o excellent_a man_n who_o be_v account_v even_o among_o the_o papist_n as_o if_o they_o be_v persuade_v of_o all_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n who_o the_o papist_n themselves_o accuse_v as_o if_o they_o intend_v to_o establish_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o abolish_v those_o pretend_a sacrament_n new_o find_v out_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o if_o they_o intend_v to_o introduce_v into_o that_o kingdom_n prayer_n in_o a_o vulgar_a tongue_n overthrow_v the_o superstition_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o destroy_v the_o obligation_n of_o the_o secret_a confession_n unto_o a_o priest_n for_o those_o gentleman_n for_o all_o that_o they_o know_v evident_o the_o error_n of_o rome_n do_v not_o forbear_v to_o say_v the_o mass_n to_o preach_v to_o write_v book_n even_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o eucharist_n for_o the_o very_a doctrine_n of_o rome_n to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n after_o the_o form_n of_o that_o church_n and_o more_o than_o that_o they_o dedicate_v their_o book_n to_o the_o pope_n himself_o to_o dazzle_v the_o people_n and_o to_o make_v as_o if_o they_o will_v have_v acknowledge_v his_o jurisdiction_n and_o his_o authority_n if_o so_o be_v that_o all_o those_o excellent_a and_o learned_a man_n do_v dissemble_v may_v not_o i_o dissemble_v withy_a they_o if_o they_o do_v deceive_v the_o people_n may_v not_o i_o deceive_v they_o also_o and_o perform_v but_o outward_o all_o the_o function_n they_o expect_v of_o i_o §._o 4._o god_n make_v i_o understand_v how_o great_a sin_n it_o be_v to_o withstand_v the_o holy_a ghost_n anââââso_o make_v a_o end_n of_o my_o conversion_n and_o bring_v i_o out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o rome_n these_o thought_n bring_v i_o into_o such_o a_o condition_n that_o i_o be_v very_o near_o stay_v still_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o mind_n which_o one_o may_v have_v to_o live_v in_o quietness_n and_o security_n in_o the_o middle_n of_o his_o friend_n and_o kinsman_n among_o a_o people_n of_o who_o he_o be_v almost_o worship_v be_v a_o mighty_a prejudice_n which_o hinder_v i_o from_o discover_v the_o error_n and_o falsehood_n of_o all_o those_o consideration_n but_o at_o last_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n do_v perform_v its_o uttermost_a endeavour_n to_o take_v i_o out_o i_o understand_v that_o god_n be_v truth_n and_o that_o lie_v and_o dissimulation_n have_v no_o other_o father_n than_o the_o devil_n what!_o shall_v i_o spend_v all_o my_o life_n in_o seduce_v the_o people_n in_o persuade_v they_o what_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v myself_o alas_o those_o good_a people_n will_v think_v that_o i_o speak_v from_o my_o heart_n that_o i_o preach_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o i_o declare_v to_o they_o his_o heavenly_a order_n and_o i_o all_o the_o while_n shall_v be_v but_o the_o instrument_n of_o the_o devil_n those_o who_o have_v no_o convenient_a time_n nor_o opportunity_n to_o instruct_v themselves_o in_o the_o holy_a write_n because_o they_o be_v treasure_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v hide_v from_o they_o will_v come_v to_o i_o to_o take_v advice_n upon_o their_o doubt_n i_o shall_v perceive_v sometime_o in_o those_o innocent_a soul_n the_o ray_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v please_v to_o work_v sometime_o mighty_o in_o the_o simple_a conscience_n as_o the_o sun_n on_o the_o untilled_a land_n shall_v i_o then_o withstand_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n deceive_v the_o ignorant_a with_o a_o lie_n colour_v with_o several_a sophism_n to_o suffocate_v spring_v truth_n which_o grace_n will_v have_v produce_v shall_v i_o say_v that_o god_n do_v speak_v this_o when_o god_n do_v not_o speak_v it_o and_o shall_v not_o i_o be_v the_o most_o wicked_a in_o the_o world_n to_o abuse_v thus_o and_o deceive_v man_n who_o shall_v come_v to_o i_o with_o so_o much_o of_o innocency_n and_o sincerity_n the_o example_n of_o all_o those_o learned_a man_n who_o i_o propose_v to_o myself_o just_a now_o signify_v nothing_o to_o answer_v at_o the_o great_a tribunal_n of_o god_n severe_a justice_n their_o sin_n will_v not_o be_v a_o excuse_n for_o i_o i_o think_v then_o i_o hear_v all_o the_o malediction_n 23.6_o malediction_n jerem._n 14.15_o ezech._n 23.6_o which_o god_n have_v pronounce_v against_o the_o false_a prophet_n who_o seduce_v his_o people_n and_o what_o do_v a_o priest_n who_o say_v the_o mass_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o who_o be_v full_o persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v he_o not_o cause_v the_o people_n to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v no_o bread_n in_o the_o sacrament_n that_o the_o bread_n be_v transubstantiate_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o such_o a_o priest_n guilty_a before_o god_n of_o all_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o people_n and_o of_o all_o their_o error_n &_o c_o those_o last_o hindrance_n be_v overthrow_v after_o grace_n have_v overcome_v the_o shift_n which_o my_o natural_a inclination_n have_v before_o devise_v i_o take_v the_o resolution_n to_o forsake_v entire_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o retire_v into_o some_o country_n where_o i_o may_v free_o and_o public_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n i_o do_v very_o well_o foresee_v that_o i_o be_v to_o bid_v a_o everlasting_a farewell_n to_o all_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o this_o world_n to_o take_v my_o leave_n of_o all_o the_o delight_n and_o recreation_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o wait_v for_o nothing_o but_o cross_n trouble_n sorrow_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o persecution_n from_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n i_o do_v foresee_v that_o i_o undertake_v the_o great_a and_o most_o important_a business_n of_o all_o my_o life_n but_o the_o hope_n of_o my_o eternal_a salvation_n quicken_v i_o and_o the_o inward_a comfort_n i_o feel_v in_o follow_v the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n make_v i_o undergo_v all_o kind_n of_o trouble_n and_o difficulty_n thus_o i_o go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n these_o be_v the_o mean_n wherewith_o god_n almighty_n have_v be_v please_v to_o work_v my_o conversion_n such_o have_v be_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n towards_o i_o this_o be_v the_o fullness_n of_o his_o abundant_a mercy_n not_o only_o he_o make_v i_o understand_v my_o error_n lighten_v my_o mind_n with_o the_o marvellous_a light_n of_o his_o holy_a word_n but_o furthermore_o he_o draw_v i_o out_o of_o those_o error_n by_o the_o almighty_a strength_n of_o his_o arm_n and_o bring_v i_o into_o a_o land_n full_a of_o light_n and_o truth_n a_o church_n which_o be_v jesus_n christ_n peculiar_a kingdom_n where_o we_o disow_v detest_v and_o abhor_v those_o impious_a and_o pernicious_a error_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n those_o doctrine_n which_o be_v destructive_a of_o true_a christianity_n the_o god_n of_o all_o mercy_n keep_v we_o in_o this_o holy_a faith_n and_o call_v home_o such_o as_o be_v wilful_o or_o ignorant_o go_v astray_o and_o give_v they_o grace_n to_o receive_v the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o the_o number_n of_o those_o who_o he_o have_v choose_v from_o the_o beginning_n may_v increase_v more_o and_o more_o to_o the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o his_o most_o holy_a name_n amen_n finis_fw-la